Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n abide_v able_a grace_n 52 3 5.0989 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A75460 The comfort of the soul laid down by way of meditation upon some heads of Christian religion, very profitable for every true Christian. Composed and written by Iohn Anthony of London Doctor of Physick. Anthony, John, 1585-1655. 1654 (1654) Wing A3479; Thomason E739_1; ESTC R207006 271,347 376

There are 46 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

that_o dwell_v in_o love_n dwell_v in_o god_n and_o god_n in_o he_o wherefore_o by_o our_o love_n to_o our_o neighbour_n we_o may_v know_v what_o love_n dwell_v in_o we_o how_o we_o love_v god_n and_o whether_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o if_o we_o be_v in_o this_o gracious_a condition_n that_o god_n have_v set_v his_o love_n upon_o we_o we_o can_v then_o lose_v this_o principal_a grace_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o god_n love_n to_o we_o and_o we_o can_v fall_v quite_o away_o from_o god_n because_o 30_o because_o eph._n 4._o 30_o we_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n into_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n the_o six_o reason_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v a_o strong_a reason_n so_o to_o establish_v our_o faith_n that_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v overthrow_v for_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n we_o be_v redeem_v out_o of_o the_o captivity_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n this_o be_v a_o infinite_a price_n which_o christ_n pay_v for_o our_o redemption_n whereby_o also_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n because_o we_o be_v make_v one_o with_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o therefore_o we_o can_v be_v bring_v again_o under_o the_o same_o bondage_n and_o slavery_n or_o under_o the_o same_o curse_n or_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n which_o we_o shall_v be_v if_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n can_v be_v break_v than_o we_o shall_v have_v but_o little_a benefit_n by_o our_o redemption_n and_o christ_n have_v pay_v that_o great_a price_n for_o we_o to_o little_a purpose_n also_o we_o be_v not_o then_o perfect_o make_v free_a but_o be_v still_o the_o servant_n of_o sin_n but_o christ_n have_v finish_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n have_v make_v we_o free_a sin_n have_v therefore_o no_o more_o power_n over_o we_o and_o the_o devil_n can_v prevail_v against_o we_o to_o break_v that_o union_n which_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o we_o by_o faith_n wherefore_o this_o consideration_n will_v much_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o opposition_n and_o adversary_n power_n that_o if_o we_o be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n and_o make_v free_a by_o he_o our_o state_n and_o condition_n be_v firm_a and_o sure_a it_o can_v be_v remove_v for_o christ_n will_v loose_v none_o of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v buy_v with_o so_o great_a a_o price_n and_o make_v free_a by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o for_o who_o he_o have_v make_v intercession_n to_o his_o father_n if_o our_o faith_n shall_v fail_v than_o christ_n intercession_n for_o we_o must_v fail_v we_o shall_v then_o lose_v christ_n and_o all_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o he_o we_o shall_v lose_v all_o true_a comfort_n in_o this_o life_n and_o eternal_a blessedness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v if_o we_o conceive_v thus_o mean_o of_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v blasphemy_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n the_o seven_o reason_n for_o the_o stability_n of_o faith_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o save_a grace_n which_o be_v in_o corruptible_a seed_n and_o plant_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o there_o be_v a_o new_a creation_n wrought_v in_o we_o for_o peter_n say_v 23_o say_v 1_o pet._n 1._o 23_o that_o we_o be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o of_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o live_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o our_o first_o birth_n be_v of_o corruptible_a seed_n which_o be_v mortal_a and_o fade_v away_o like_o the_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n but_o our_o regeneration_n or_o second_o birth_n come_v from_o a_o immortal_a principle_n which_o can_v decay_v but_o continue_v for_o ever_o this_o birth_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o it_o have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o can_v never_o die_v though_o it_o may_v lie_v gasp_v for_o a_o time_n through_o some_o violent_a temptation_n or_o sore_a trial_n for_o if_o god_n begin_v to_o work_v a_o work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v it_o until_o it_o be_v finish_v from_o hence_o we_o may_v draw_v great_a consolation_n to_o ourselves_o in_o the_o apprehension_n that_o we_o be_v weak_a in_o grace_n for_o though_o we_o find_v but_o the_o beginning_n of_o our_o regeneration_n wrought_v in_o we_o god_n will_v not_o leave_v his_o own_o work_n imperfect_a though_o we_o can_v perform_v our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n as_o we_o ought_v yet_o god_n will_v accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n in_o christ_n if_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o faithful_a heart_n and_o though_o we_o find_v but_o some_o part_n of_o true_a repentance_n wrought_v in_o we_o as_o to_o our_o own_o apprehension_n god_n will_v go_v on_o in_o his_o work_n of_o reformation_n until_o there_o be_v a_o through_o change_v wrought_v both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n be_v weak_a in_o we_o it_o will_v grow_v strong_a it_o will_v increase_v and_o continue_v because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v water_v his_o own_o seed_n which_o he_o have_v plant_v with_o his_o spiritual_a dew_n from_o above_o the_o last_o reason_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v this_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o where_o he_o do_v settle_v his_o habitation_n there_o he_o will_v abide_v for_o ever_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v purify_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o we_o be_v the_o spiritual_a temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v dwell_v there_o according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 16_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 16_o know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o thus_o say_v john_n 15._o john_n 1_o john_n 4_o 15._o whosoever_o shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v that_o true_a comforter_n who_o christ_n have_v send_v from_o the_o father_n to_o be_v with_o every_o member_n of_o his_o church_n to_o dwell_v with_o they_o to_o be_v in_o they_o and_o to_o abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o where_o he_o be_v there_o no_o grace_n can_v be_v want_v if_o we_o enjoy_v his_o comfortable_a society_n he_o will_v then_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n no_o erroneous_a doctrine_n shall_v infect_v our_o soul_n but_o we_o shall_v right_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o be_v able_a in_o some_o measure_n to_o walk_v in_o they_o he_o will_v protect_v we_o in_o all_o danger_n he_o will_v comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n he_o will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o assault_n and_o temptation_n and_o will_v give_v we_o strength_n of_o grace_n to_o hold_v out_o and_o persevere_v in_o all_o our_o trial_n unto_o the_o end_n wherefore_o grieve_v not_o this_o holy_a spirit_n by_o who_o we_o have_v so_o much_o comfort_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o by_o who_o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n who_o will_v confirm_v and_o establish_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v continue_v steadfast_a until_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o our_o bless_a saviour_n jesus_n christ_n for_o ever_o in_o heaven_n the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o treatise_n now_o for_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o work_n i_o do_v earnest_o request_v every_o christian_a reader_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a consideration_n with_o himself_o which_o way_n the_o thought_n of_o his_o mind_n be_v chief_o bend_v and_o upon_o what_o he_o do_v set_v the_o meditation_n of_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o may_v know_v whether_o his_o way_n be_v steer_v towards_o heaven_n or_o not_o for_o they_o do_v ne●rest_v affect_v his_o soul_n and_o plain_o show_v what_o be_v his_o chief_a joy_n and_o delight_n if_o his_o thought_n be_v too_o much_o set_v upon_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n than_o his_o heart_n can_v be_v faithful_a towards_o god_n and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o place_n in_o his_o soul_n to_o receive_v that_o true_a comfort_n which_o otherwise_o he_o may_v have_v in_o the_o sweet_a fruition_n of_o god_n by_o his_o pious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n also_o if_o he_o delight_v to_o ruminate_v upon_o his_o carnal_a pleasure_n or_o upon_o any_o other_o evil_a concupiscence_n or_o to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n with_o approbation_n his_o former_a iniquity_n he_o do_v sin_n over_o again_o those_o former_a sin_n and_o do_v defile_v his_o precious_a soul_n with_o uncleanness_n and_o pollution_n
affection_n with_o holy_a desire_n to_o embrace_v he_o 7_o he_o psal_n 24._o 7_o and_o to_o set_v open_a the_o gate_n and_o door_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o this_o king_n of_o glory_n may_v come_v in_o and_o dwell_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o if_o we_o do_v sincere_o from_o the_o heart_n desire_v such_o a_o glorious_a king_n and_o such_o a_o bountiful_a inhabitant_n to_o make_v his_o perpetual_a abode_n with_o we_o than_o we_o must_v press_v hard_a upon_o he_o and_o importune_v he_o earnest_o with_o our_o frequent_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n to_o abide_v and_o dwell_v with_o we_o 3._o we_o gen._n 19_o 2_o 3._o the_o two_o angel_n that_o come_v to_o sodom_n refuse_v to_o tarry_v all_o night_n with_o lot_n upon_o his_o first_o entreaty_n but_o when_o he_o press_v great_o upon_o they_o they_o turn_v in_o unto_o he_o and_o enter_v into_o his_o house_n and_o he_o make_v they_o a_o feast_n and_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o then_o they_o preserve_v he_o from_o the_o burn_a but_o behold_v 20_o behold_v revel_v 3._o 20_o christ_n stand_v at_o the_o door_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o knock_n if_o we_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o open_v the_o door_n he_o will_v come_v in_o to_o we_o and_o will_v sup_v with_o we_o we_o shall_v sup_v with_o he_o o_o the_o happiness_n of_o that_o soul_n that_o do_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o call_v and_o do_v open_v his_o heart_n unto_o he_o when_o he_o knock_v either_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n by_o the_o motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o affliction_n trouble_n cross_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n whatsoever_o but_o if_o we_o will_v entertain_v christ_n we_o must_v have_v no_o corrival_n with_o he_o for_o god_n and_o mammon_n christ_n and_o belial_n can_v dwell_v together_o thus_o say_v christ_n 13_o christ_n luk._n 26_o 13_o you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n for_o no_o man_n can_v serve_v two_o master_n also_o thus_o say_v paul_n 15_o paul_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 14_o 15_o what_o communion_n have_v light_a with_o darkness_n and_o what_o concord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n 37._o belial_n mat._n 10_o 37._o if_o we_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n son_n or_o daughtor_n more_o than_o christ_n we_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o he_o if_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v carry_v after_o the_o riches_n preferment_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n or_o after_o any_o darling_n sin_n then_o christ_n will_v not_o dwell_v there_o and_o we_o lose_v the_o comfortable_a and_o bless_a presence_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o fullness_n of_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o rich_a endowment_n for_o that_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n wherefore_o now_o we_o may_v meditate_v comfortable_o on_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n for_o the_o terriblenesse_n of_o his_o majesty_n be_v cloud_v with_o the_o vail_n of_o his_o goodness_n the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n be_v sweeten_v with_o his_o mercy_n and_o tender_a compassion_n christ_n have_v take_v our_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o have_v put_v they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mercy_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v keep_v for_o true_a blessedness_n to_o all_o eternity_n if_o his_o greatness_n do_v affright_v we_o his_o goodness_n will_v allure_v we_o if_o his_o justice_n do_v drive_v we_o from_o he_o his_o mercy_n and_o love_n will_v draw_v we_o to_o he_o for_o by_o christ_n we_o have_v a_o near_a relation_n to_o god_n himself_o either_o as_o his_o servant_n by_o grace_n or_o as_o his_o child_n by_o adoption_n in_o both_o which_o respect_v our_o meditation_n of_o he_o will_v be_v exceed_o delightful_a to_o we_o so_o likewise_o if_o we_o fix_v our_o thought_n upon_o christ_n though_o his_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n be_v far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o humane_a capacity_n yet_o by_o faith_n we_o do_v apprehend_v he_o to_o be_v our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o advocate_n now_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n his_o father_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o therefore_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o can_v but_o ravish_v our_o soul_n with_o heavenly_a joy_n and_o spiritual_a consolation_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o of_o our_o atonement_n with_o god_n and_o also_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o to_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n how_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a geost_fw-la be_v the_o same_o spiritual_a essence_n and_o be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o the_o son_n coequal_a and_o coeternall_a with_o they_o both_o but_o as_o the_o deity_n be_v distinguish_v into_o three_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n and_o he_o be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n christ_n do_v prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n in_o these_o word_n 26_o word_n john_n 15_o 26_o but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o that_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n be_v manifest_a by_o this_o of_o paul_n 6_o paul_n gal._n 4._o 6_o and_o because_o you_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n john_n also_o the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o christ_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n by_o these_o word_n 7_o word_n 2_o joh_n 5._o 7_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o a●e_n one._n the_o prophet_n call_v he_o 2_o he_o isa_n 11._o 2_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n the_o spirit_n of_o counsel_n and_o strength_n the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n 14_o lord_n heb._n 9_o 14_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o god_n from_o who_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 7_o david_n psal_n 139_o 7_o whither_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o sptrit_a or_o whither_o shall_v i_o flee_v from_o thy_o presence_n christ_n call_v he_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 7._o truth_n joh_n 14._o 16_o 7._o and_o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o forever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v john_n call_v he_o 11_o he_o rev._n 11._o 11_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n because_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n the_o do_v quicken_v our_o heart_n and_o revive_v we_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o our_o trespass_n and_o sin_n paul_n do_v also_o call_v he_o 16_o he_o rom._n 8._o 15_o 16_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n to_o witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n if_o we_o fix_v our_o meditation_n on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o divine_a essence_n and_o be_v or_o as_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n we_o shall_v be_v confound_v in_o these_o deep_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o unity_n in_o trinity_n but_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o he_o according_a to_o his_o proper_a office_n as_o he_o be_v a_o comforter_n or_o according_a to_o his_o several_a operation_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v then_o find_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o which_o will_v minister_v heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a consolation_n to_o our_o poor_a soul_n first_o therefore_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v a_o comforter_n to_o we_o in_o all_o our_o affliction_n and_o suffering_n for_o we_o be_v daily_o expose_v to_o many_o tribulation_n and_o calamity_n either_o for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o grace_n or_o for_o our_o correction_n when_o we_o lie_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n which_o will_v easy_o swallow_v we_o up_o if_o we_o have_v not_o some_o true_a comforter_n to_o support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o they_o 1_o they_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 1●_n 1_o there_o be_v also_o a_o host_n of_o sinful_a lust_n in_o we_o that_o war_n against_o our_o soul_n which_o do_v daily_o assault_v we_o with_o strong_a temptation_n and_o we_o be_v round_o beset_v with_o peril_n danger_n and_o spiritual_a enemy_n which_o continual_o threaten_v our_o downfall_n and_o ruin_n and_o do_v seek_v to_o hinder_v our_o salvation_n but_o above_o all_o we_o be_v sometime_o wound_v in_o our_o
incline_v the_o will_n or_o else_o we_o can_v receive_v it_o all_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o spiritual_a grace_n come_v from_o god_n which_o the_o father_n be_v sometime_o say_v to_o give_v according_a to_o this_o of_o james_n 17_o james_n jam._n 1._o 17_o every_o good_a gift_n and_o every_o perfect_a gift_n be_v from_o above_o and_o come_v down_o from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n sometime_o also_o the_o son_n be_v say_v to_o give_v they_o for_o thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 8._o apostle_n eph._n 4._o 8._o when_o he_o ascend_v up_o on_o high_a he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n that_o be_v he_o give_v not_o only_a place_n of_o dignity_n and_o of_o authority_n to_o some_o in_o his_o church_n but_o also_o he_o give_v they_o all_o spiritual_a endowment_n of_o grace_n meet_v for_o their_o several_a place_n and_o function_n but_o these_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v proper_o wrought_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n how_o and_o when_o he_o please_v we_o must_v therefore_o crave_v his_o help_n we_o must_v wait_v his_o time_n and_o attend_v upon_o the_o mean_n until_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o work_v grace_n in_o we_o and_o we_o must_v resolve_v without_o delay_n or_o excuse_n 7._o excuse_n heb._n 3._o 7._o to_o accept_v of_o grace_n even_o that_o very_a day_n when_o god_n do_v offer_v it_o and_o not_o to_o grieve_v his_o good_a spirit_n by_o refuse_v the_o sweet_a tender_a of_o grace_n or_o by_o lose_v any_o opportunity_n wherein_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v by_o this_o heavenly_a work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o wherefore_o 5._o ps_n 8._o 4_o 5._o be_v not_o thou_o like_o the_o deaf_a adder_n that_o stop_v her_o ear_n which_o will_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o charmer_n charm_v never_o so_o wise_o but_o when_o any_o mean_n of_o grace_n be_v offer_v or_o when_o thou_o feel_v a_o good_a motion_n in_o thy_o heart_n be_v ready_a to_o embrace_v it_o for_o that_o be_v god_n call_v and_o then_o christ_n knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o thy_o heart_n 20._o heart_n rev._n 3._o 20._o as_o he_o do_v at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o laodicean_n if_o thou_o do_v present_o open_a unto_o he_o he_o will_v come_v in_o to_o thou_o and_o will_v sup_v with_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v sup_v with_o he_o but_o if_o thou_o deferre_v it_o until_o the_o morrow_n thou_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o will_v knock_v again_o or_o not_o o_o what_o a_o bountiful_a and_o gracious_a guest_n do_v thou_o lose_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o open_v thy_o heart_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n knock_v there_o either_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n by_o holy_a inspiration_n by_o his_o blessing_n by_o affliction_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n whatsoever_o if_o thou_o belong_v unto_o he_o thou_o will_v know_v his_o knock_n thou_o will_v know_v his_o voice_n thou_o will_v make_v haste_n and_o prepare_v the_o best_a room_n in_o thy_o affection_n to_o give_v he_o entertainment_n and_o thou_o will_v clear_v away_o all_o the_o filth_n of_o thy_o sin_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o he_o may_v come_v into_o a_o clean_a heart_n that_o nothing_o may_v displease_v or_o discontent_n he_o for_o he_o come_v not_o to_o lodge_v with_o thou_o a_o night_n or_o two_o as_o a_o stranger_n or_o to_o sojourn_v with_o thou_o a_o month_n or_o a_o year_n and_o then_o to_o leave_v thou_o 17._o thou_o eph._n 3._o 17._o but_o he_o will_v dwell_v in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n 23_o faith_n joh._n 14._o 23_o and_o will_v abide_v with_o thou_o for_o ever_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n when_o he_o be_v come_v he_o will_v furnish_v his_o room_n with_o his_o own_o furniture_n he_o will_v perfume_v they_o with_o his_o own_o merit_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o issue_n from_o thence_o shall_v be_v a_o sweet_a savour_n well_o please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n he_o will_v also_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o thy_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n he_o will_v heal_v and_o cure_v all_o thy_o spiritual_a disease_n he_o will_v be_v a_o prophet_n to_o thou_o to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v thou_o in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n he_o will_v be_v thy_o highpriest_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o thou_o and_o to_o present_v thy_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n unto_o god_n his_o father_n also_o he_o will_v be_v thy_o king_n to_o rule_v in_o thy_o heart_n with_o his_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n and_o to_o subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n christ_n will_v feast_v thou_o at_o his_o own_o table_n with_o bread_n of_o life_n water_n of_o life_n and_o with_o heavenly_a manna_n which_o be_v precious_a dainty_n and_o spiritual_a food_n for_o thy_o soul_n to_o feed_v upon_o and_o thy_o heart_n will_v rejoice_v and_o be_v glad_a in_o he_o thou_o shall_v also_o enjoy_v 23._o enjoy_v gal._n 5._o 22_o 23._o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o spirit_n which_o be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n and_o all_o that_o belong_v unto_o thou_o shall_v partake_v of_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o of_o his_o blessing_n 7._o blessing_n ps_n 24._o 7._o let_v thy_o gate_n therefore_o stand_v open_a that_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n may_v enter_v in_o and_o be_v thou_o as_o ready_a to_o receive_v he_o with_o all_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n 9_o heart_n luc._n 19_o 6._o 9_o as_o zachaeus_n be_v to_o receive_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n who_o bring_v salvation_n to_o his_o house_n be_v not_o thou_o like_o the_o spouse_n in_o the_o canticle_n 2d_o canticle_n cant._n 5._o 2d_o who_o will_v not_o rise_v out_o of_o her_o bed_n of_o security_n to_o open_v the_o door_n of_o her_o heart_n to_o her_o belove_a but_o suffer_v he_o to_o stand_v knock_v and_o call_v until_o his_o lock_n be_v wet_a with_o the_o drop_n of_o the_o night_n now_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o care_n of_o thy_o soul_n health_n study_n and_o meditate_v how_o to_o observe_v the_o time_n and_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o how_o to_o improve_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o thy_o own_o spiritual_a gain_n can_v thou_o observe_v the_o time_n and_o season_n of_o the_o year_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v thou_o no_o care_n to_o take_v the_o opportunity_n that_o god_n give_v thou_o for_o grace_n learn_v of_o the_o mariner_n who_o will_v hoist_v up_o sail_n when_o the_o wind_n serve_v for_o he_o and_o when_o god_n offer_v thou_o grace_n do_v thou_o raise_v up_o thy_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o receive_v it_o if_o thou_o refuse_v his_o gracious_a goodness_n to_o thou_o herein_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o thou_o be_v barren_a of_o true_a virtue_n and_o piety_n if_o thy_o soul_n be_v without_o spiritual_a comfort_n in_o thy_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o thou_o be_v fruitless_a in_o all_o good_a work_n if_o thou_o will_v make_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o thy_o time_n thou_o must_v diligent_o attend_v to_o the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n thou_o must_v thankful_o receive_v his_o mercy_n and_o blessing_n thou_o must_v bear_v the_o cross_n of_o christ_n with_o patience_n and_o with_o meekness_n submit_v thyself_o with_o all_o humbleness_n of_o spirit_n to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n also_o thou_o must_v repent_v of_o holy_a duty_n omit_v as_o well_o as_o of_o sin_n commit_v and_o howsoever_o god_n shall_v deal_v with_o thou_o at_o that_o very_a time_n make_v a_o holy_a use_n of_o it_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o thy_o soul_n if_o the_o devil_n have_v delude_v thou_o with_o false_a pretence_n or_o have_v lull_v thou_o asleep_a in_o his_o bed_n of_o security_n so_o that_o thou_o have_v slight_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v vain_o spend_v thy_o precious_a time_n without_o any_o spiritual_a or_o heavenly_a gain_n thou_o must_v labour_v with_o all_o christian_a diligence_n to_o recover_v it_o again_o which_o thou_o may_v do_v by_o the_o gracious_a help_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n herein_o for_o thou_o have_v no_o ability_n in_o thyself_o to_o get_v out_o of_o these_o dangerous_a snare_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o to_o redeem_v the_o time_n that_o thou_o have_v lose_v to_o conclude_v if_o thou_o do_v desire_v to_o make_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n thou_o must_v strive_v to_o remove_v out_o of_o thy_o heart_n whatsoever_o do_v displease_v or_o dishonour_n god_n and_o whatsoever_o may_v hinder_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o current_n of_o grace_n to_o thy_o heart_n for_o if_o thy_o mind_n be_v carry_v after_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n after_o vain_a pleasure_n or_o sinful_a delight_n and_o if_o thou_o do_v
our_o life_n will_v be_v much_o the_o hard_a time_n be_v not_o gain_v but_o lose_v which_o we_o spend_v without_o some_o fruit_n of_o grace_n and_o godliness_n which_o indeed_o be_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o time_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v seek_v unto_o god_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v 6._o find_v isa_n 55._o 6._o we_o shall_v call_v upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o otherwise_o though_o we_o seek_v he_o he_o will_v not_o be_v find_v and_o though_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o he_o will_v not_o answer_v nor_o be_v entreat_v thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 2_o now_o be_v the_o time_n acceptable_a now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o salvation_n but_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o bewail_v our_o condition_n for_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n do_v so_o weaken_v we_o and_o the_o power_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n do_v so_o prevail_v against_o we_o that_o we_o can_v break_v through_o such_o strong_a opposition_n as_o they_o make_v to_o hinder_v this_o holy_a work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o i_o he_o devil_n do_v cunning_o dissuade_v we_o from_o it_o the_o world_n do_v strong_o allure_v we_o to_o follow_v still_o the_o vanity_n of_o it_o and_o our_o own_o flesh_n do_v daily_o entice_v we_o to_o carnal_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n so_o that_o we_o can_v find_v no_o time_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n or_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o own_o comfort_n though_o we_o do_v sometime_o strive_v against_o our_o sin_n yet_o we_o can_v overcome_v they_o or_o if_o one_o sin_n be_v subdue_v another_o be_v ready_a to_o rise_v up_o against_o we_o also_o though_o we_o can_v actual_o commit_v a_o sin_n yet_o we_o may_v commit_v it_o in_o our_o sinful_a desire_n to_o it_o in_o a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o it_o in_o consent_v to_o it_o or_o in_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v do_v when_o by_o our_o place_n and_o authority_n we_o may_v hinder_v it_o we_o have_v also_o just_a cause_n to_o bemoan_v ourselves_o for_o though_o we_o do_v labour_n for_o grace_n and_o do_v use_v all_o mean_n for_o it_o to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n and_o yet_o we_o can_v attain_v unto_o it_o though_o it_o be_v thus_o with_o we_o yet_o we_o must_v still_o continue_v our_o best_a endeavour_n to_o oppose_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o we_o must_v still_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o wait_v upon_o god_n until_o he_o shall_v please_v to_o work_v grace_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n also_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n that_o by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o his_o grace_n e_z and_o by_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o strength_n which_o be_v the_o word_n and_o spirit_n he_o will_v make_v we_o able_a to_o overcome_v our_o corruption_n by_o season_v our_o heart_n with_o grace_n to_o subdue_v the_o power_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o repentance_n to_o improve_v our_o time_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o also_o to_o break_v through_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n then_o god_n will_v so_o bless_v we_o in_o our_o pious_a endeavour_n that_o we_o shall_v prevail_v against_o all_o opposition_n and_o adversary_n power_n not_o by_o our_o own_o strength_n but_o by_o the_o might_n and_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n 9_o redeemer_n 2_o cor._n 12._o 9_o who_o grace_n and_o favour_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o who_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o our_o weakness_n under_o who_o banner_n we_o fight_v these_o spiritual_a battle_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o great_a name_n of_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n be_v our_o redeemer_n and_o have_v wrought_v our_o redemption_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o a_o new_a covenant_n and_o a_o everlasting_a inheritance_n in_o heaven_n as_o formerly_z in_o part_n have_v be_v show_v also_o if_o we_o have_v all_o our_o strength_n and_o power_n from_o he_o against_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n without_o who_o we_o can_v stand_v against_o they_o nor_o break_v through_o the_o band_n of_o death_n to_o enjoy_v that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o we_o must_v then_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o his_o person_n what_o be_v his_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o how_o he_o be_v qualify_v for_o this_o great_a work_n that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o sure_a ground_n to_o confide_v in_o he_o and_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o as_o our_o redeemer_n and_o only_a saviour_n also_o we_o must_v know_v how_o he_o have_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n how_o he_o have_v conquer_v death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o what_o price_n he_o have_v pay_v for_o our_o ransom_n for_o without_o this_o heavenly_a knowledge_n and_o faith_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o we_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n from_o christ_n neither_o can_v we_o have_v any_o good_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n that_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n that_o sin_n have_v no_o condemn_a power_n over_o we_o that_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o we_o be_v reconcile_v again_o unto_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n god_n have_v reveal_v these_o deep_a mystery_n to_o we_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n that_o the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v enlarge_v upon_o they_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o edification_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o god_n shall_v give_v light_n to_o our_o understanding_n by_o his_o bless_a spirit_n but_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v 8._o say_v be_v 53._o 8._o who_o can_v declare_v his_o generation_n which_o be_v from_o eternity_n for_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n 18._o god_n joh._n 1._o 18._o who_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v promise_v and_o expect_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o his_o incarnation_n 14_o incarnation_n john_n 1._o 14_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n for_o 16_o for_o heb._n 2._o 16_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o personal_o unite_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n a_o true_a humane_a body_n 32._o body_n luc._n 1._o 31_o 32._o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n 38_o mary_n mat._n 26._o 38_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v so_o sanctify_v her_o womb_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v without_o sin_n either_o original_n or_o actual_a and_o though_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v into_o his_o deity_n whereby_o this_o union_n be_v never_o to_o be_v dissolve_v yet_o either_o nature_n have_v their_o whole_a property_n and_o operation_n remain_v still_o unconfound_v and_o therefore_o he_o be_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n 17_o man_n heb._n 2._o 17_o like_v unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 15._o thing_n heb._n 4._o 15._o sin_n only_o except_v and_o those_o two_o nature_n make_v but_o one_o person_n in_o christ_n 18_o christ_n mat._n 28._o 18_o to_o who_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n so_o that_o he_o command_v and_o over-ruleth_a all_o create_a power_n whatsoever_o god_n do_v also_o give_v he_o three_o honourable_a office_n that_o he_o may_v be_v every_o way_n fit_a to_o be_v our_o eternal_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o we_o for_o god_n ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o to_o offer_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n as_o he_o will_v accept_v and_o to_o be_v a_o king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v his_o church_n and_o also_o to_o rule_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o spirit_n christ_n be_v thus_o qualify_v have_v fulfil_v for_o we_o and_o in_o our_o nature_n whatsoever_o the_o law_n do_v require_v of_o we_o and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o by_o faith_n for_o our_o justification_n that_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n may_v cleave_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n when_o christ_n do_v execute_v that_o part_n of_o his_o priestly_a office_n which_o be_v the_o offer_v up_o of_o his_o body_n a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v and_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v the_o bitter_a torment_n which_o he_o suffer_v both_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o his_o body_n to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o purchase_v our_o freedom_n and_o redemptition_n out_o of_o the_o captivity_n
christ_n shall_v be_v receive_v up_o to_o eternal_a glory_n the_o saint_n that_o then_o arise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n be_v forerunner_n of_o this_o general_a resurrection_n this_o be_v a_o dreadful_a sign_n to_o the_o cruel_a jew_n who_o have_v embrue_v their_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o same_o jesus_n who_o they_o crucify_v shall_v be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n at_o that_o day_n before_o who_o they_o must_v appear_v to_o answer_v for_o this_o their_o bloody_a fact_n it_o may_v also_o be_v a_o terrible_a warning_n to_o all_o wicked_a man_n that_o be_v defile_v with_o innocent_a blood_n and_o that_o live_v in_o profaneness_n and_o sensuality_n fulfil_v their_o sinful_a lust_n without_o any_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o holy_a desire_n to_o be_v reclaim_v from_o their_o wicked_a way_n and_o without_o any_o care_n to_o make_v their_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o true_a repentance_n for_o a_o time_n will_v come_v when_o they_o must_v answer_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o all_o their_o cry_a sin_n and_o heinous_a abomination_n wherefore_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a consideration_n with_o thyself_o how_o thou_o be_v prepare_v and_o fit_v for_o thy_o grave_n if_o thou_o have_v live_v to_o the_o world_n to_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o devil_n or_o to_o thyself_o thou_o be_v in_o a_o sad_a and_o lamentable_a condition_n for_o the_o grave_n can_v keep_v thou_o from_o judgement_n but_o must_v open_v her_o mouth_n 10_o mouth_n jona_n 2_o 10_o like_o jonahs_n whale_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o last_o trumpet_n and_o it_o will_v deliver_v thou_o up_o even_o as_o it_o sound_v thou_o if_o thy_o grave_n receive_v thou_o a_o hypocrite_n a_o blasphemer_n a_o swearer_n a_o unclean_a person_n or_o the_o like_a it_o will_v deliver_v thou_o up_o to_o judgement_n all_o pollute_a with_o the_o guilt_n and_o filth_n of_o the_o same_o sin_n 11_o sin_n job_n 20._o 11_o if_o thy_o bone_n be_v full_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o thy_o youth_n they_o will_v lie_v down_o with_o thou_o in_o the_o dust_n and_o they_o will_v cleave_v fast_o to_o thou_o when_o thou_o shall_v rise_v again_o how_o can_v thou_o then_o stand_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o before_o all_o his_o glorious_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint_n if_o thou_o be_v in_o this_o sinful_a condition_n and_o how_o can_v thou_o endure_v the_o rigour_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o judgement_n if_o this_o consideration_n be_v well_o imprint_v in_o thy_o heart_n it_o will_v make_v thou_o afraid_a to_o go_v on_o in_o a_o way_n of_o sin_n without_o repentance_n but_o such_o as_o have_v live_v to_o the_o lord_n shall_v die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v sleep_v quiet_o in_o their_o grave_n as_o in_o their_o bed_n 17._o bed_n mal._n 3._o 17._o for_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n jewel_n and_o he_o keep_v they_o in_o these_o cabinet_n until_o the_o day_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v up_o his_o jewel_n wherefore_o if_o we_o have_v any_o interest_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n his_o blood_n will_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n his_o righteousness_n will_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v account_v we_o as_o his_o jewel_n and_o then_o christ_n will_v sanctify_v the_o grave_n to_o we_o ●_o we_o isa_n 57_o ●_o we_o shall_v enter_v into_o peace_n we_o shall_v rest_v in_o our_o bed_n walk_v in_o his_o righteousness_n thus_o comfortable_o shall_v we_o enter_v into_o the_o grave_n if_o we_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n by_o the_o witness_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o our_o resurrection_n will_v be_v with_o unspeakable_a joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o we_o of_o the_o burial_n of_o christ_n though_o christ_n die_v a_o most_o shameful_a and_o ignominious_a death_n yet_o he_o have_v honourable_a burial_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n 41._o jew_n john_n 19_o 40_o 41._o for_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n and_o nicodemus_n two_o honourable_a man_n among_o the_o jew_n beg_v leave_v of_o pilate_n and_o take_v down_o his_o body_n from_o the_o cross_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o linen_n clothes_n with_o spice_n and_o lay_v it_o in_o a_o new_a sepulchre_n which_o be_v hew_v out_o in_o a_o rock_n wherein_o be_v never_o man_n yet_o lay_v and_o they_o roll_v a_o great_a stone_n to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n think_v he_o not_o safe_a enough_o and_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v his_o resurrection_n as_o they_o think_v 65._o think_v mat._n 27._o 64_o 65._o they_o get_v leave_v of_o pilate_n to_o make_v the_o sepulchre_n sure_a then_o they_o seal_v the_o stone_n and_o set_v a_o watch_n about_o the_o sepulchre_n yet_o notwithstanding_o at_o god_n appoint_v time_n he_o do_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n which_o be_v not_o separate_v from_o his_o humane_a nature_n though_o he_o be_v now_o dead_a 10._o dead_a psal_n 16._o 10._o for_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n 44._o corruption_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 44._o and_o his_o natural_a body_n be_v raise_v up_o a_o spiritual_a and_o glorify_a body_n but_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o draw_v from_o christ_n now_o he_o be_v dead_a can_v we_o have_v any_o benefit_n by_o he_o as_o he_o be_v now_o bury_v it_o be_v true_a which_o christ_n say_v 63_o say_v john_n 6._o 63_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o though_o we_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o grave_n yet_o by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n which_o ever_o live_v we_o may_v receive_v great_a benefit_n and_o much_o spiritual_a consolation_n by_o the_o death_n &_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o thence_o to_o kill_v that_o body_n of_o sin_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v in_o we_o and_o to_o bury_v it_o with_o christ_n that_o the_o new_a man_n of_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n may_v be_v quicken_v and_o raise_v up_o in_o we_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o mort●fie_v and_o kill_v this_o body_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v also_o bury_v it_o and_o every_o member_n of_o it_o with_o christ_n that_o no_o sin_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o profitable_a or_o please_a to_o our_o nature_n may_v gather_v strength_n to_o overpower_v we_o or_o to_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o subjection_n that_o ●very_n base_a lust_n shall_v reign_v over_o we_o to_o make_v we_o slave_n unto_o sin_n it_o be_v true_a that_o sin_n will_v still_o dwell_v in_o we_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n will_v make_v we_o able_a by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n so_o to_o kill_v the_o power_n of_o it_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o grace_n work_v our_o sanctification_n by_o degree_n and_o we_o can_v expect_v perfection_n of_o holiness_n until_o we_o come_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o if_o we_o will_v bury_v our_o sin_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n we_o must_v not_o only_o forbear_v the_o actual_a commit_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v quite_o loose_v the_o delightful_a remembrance_n of_o it_o for_o if_o we_o do_v still_o retain_v with_o approbation_n a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o our_o former_a sin_n we_o do_v then_o keep_v they_o above_o ground_n and_o unbury_v and_o they_o will_v be_v odious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n though_o the_o act_n of_o sin_n be_v mortify_v in_o we_o 5._o we_o rom._n 6._o 3_o 4_o 5._o if_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o death_n that_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v destroy_v that_o henceforth_o we_o shall_v not_o serve_v sin_n but_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o bury_v with_o christ_n than_o the_o sweet_a perfume_n and_o precious_a odour_n of_o his_o merit_n will_v take_v away_o the_o stench_n and_o noisomeness_n of_o our_o sin_n from_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n wherefore_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v draw_v a_o new_a principle_n of_o grace_n from_o christ_n to_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o he_o to_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o both_o in_o the_o act_n and_o in_o the_o delight_n of_o sin_n 1._o sin_n col._n 3._o 1._o and_o to_o rise_v again_o with_o he_o in_o a_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a life_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v continual_o with_o he_o to_o have_v our_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o for_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n will_v be_v where_o he_o be_v in_o
thy_o get_n get_v understanding_n this_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a way_n of_o holy_a and_o devout_a meditation_n six_o we_o must_v daily_o practise_v this_o religious_a duty_n and_o if_o we_o learn_v to_o meditate_v upon_o ourselves_o what_o our_o state_n and_o condition_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v of_o nature_n or_o of_o grace_n it_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o meditation_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n though_o it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n for_o a_o true_a child_n of_o god_n to_o meditate_v upon_o heavenly_a thing_n for_o his_o own_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n yet_o by_o use_n and_o exercise_n we_o may_v attain_v unto_o it_o and_o the_o sweetness_n that_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o it_o will_v by_o degree_n bring_v we_o to_o delight_v in_o this_o pious_a duty_n ●0_n duty_n phil._n 3._o ●0_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n though_o we_o live_v upon_o earth_n and_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v heaven_n and_o heavenly_a happiness_n in_o some_o part_n while_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n for_o if_o we_o be_v frequent_a in_o our_o meditation_n on_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 12_o heaven_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 12_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n will_v make_v our_o conversation_n in_o this_o world_n to_o be_v in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a sincerity_n the_o seven_o direction_n be_v to_o choose_v such_o time_n and_o such_o place_n as_o be_v most_o fit_v and_o most_o convenienient_a for_o this_o holy_a duty_n that_o we_o be_v not_o interrupt_v by_o any_o occurrence_n of_o worldly_a occasion_n but_o that_o our_o mind_n and_o our_o heart_n may_v agree_v and_o go_v together_o in_o our_o meditation_n the_o fit_a time_n for_o this_o religious_a service_n be_v when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o give_v a_o inclination_n of_o will_n and_o to_o move_v our_o heart_n thereunto_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o time_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o let_v slip_n nor_o to_o lose_v this_o opportunity_n which_o he_o tender_v to_o we_o because_o it_o be_v the_o time_n for_o grace_n of_o his_o own_o choose_n and_o the_o time_n which_o he_o will_v accept_v if_o we_o take_v this_o time_n and_o set_v it_o apart_o to_o employ_v ourselves_o in_o this_o holy_a service_n he_o will_v then_o enlarge_v our_o heart_n for_o it_o he_o will_v direct_v we_o in_o it_o and_o he_o will_v gracious_o assist_v we_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o conceive_v aright_o of_o those_o thing_n whereon_o we_o do_v intend_v to_o meditate_v as_o we_o must_v be_v free_a at_o that_o time_n from_o all_o incumberance_n by_o our_o affair_n so_o we_o must_v retire_v to_o such_o a_o place_n where_o we_o may_v be_v solitary_a and_o private_a that_o our_o heart_n may_v whole_o intend_v our_o meditation_n a_o solitary_a field_n be_v a_o fit_a place_n to_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o god_n 6._o god_n mat._n 6._o 6._o our_o closet_n be_v most_o convenient_a to_o meditate_v on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n if_o we_o choose_v such_o time_n and_o place_n we_o may_v free_o delight_v ourselves_o with_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a contemplation_n last_o we_o must_v prepare_v our_o heart_n for_o this_o pious_a duty_n by_o faithful_a prayer_n that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o aid_v and_o assist_v we_o herein_o with_o his_o bless_a spirit_n to_o raise_v up_o our_o affection_n to_o enlighten_v our_o understanding_n and_o to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v our_o heart_n from_o all_o sinful_a thought_n worldly_a care_n and_o from_o every_o evil_a concupiscence_n that_o we_o may_v full_o devote_v ourselves_o to_o the_o meditation_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n that_o this_o holy_a service_n may_v be_v perform_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o spiritual_a knowledge_n to_o the_o strengthen_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n &_o to_o carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o troublesome_a chance_n and_o change_n that_o be_v incident_a to_o this_o life_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n will_v lift_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n above_o all_o worldly_a care_n and_o above_o all_o the_o cross_n and_o sorrow_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o here_o upon_o earth_n holy_a meditation_n be_v the_o prerogative_n only_o of_o a_o true_a christian_a among_o many_o prerogative_n that_o a_o true_a believe_a christian_n have_v above_o all_o other_o man_n this_o be_v not_o the_o least_o that_o he_o can_v raise_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o his_o heart_n to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o he_o whereas_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v attain_v to_o this_o high_a degree_n of_o true_a christianity_n by_o all_o the_o mean_v that_o art_n or_o nature_n can_v afford_v they_o for_o their_o meditation_n reach_v but_o to_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o brain_n and_o be_v practise_v only_o by_o the_o outward_a man_n which_o can_v yield_v they_o no_o spiritual_a consolation_n because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o grace_n to_o move_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o heavenly_a thing_n which_o only_o can_v minister_v sweetness_n &_o true_a consolation_n to_o a_o afflict_a soul_n and_o to_o a_o trouble_a conscience_n to_o give_v they_o good_a hope_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n carnal_a man_n set_v their_o mind_n and_o affection_n upon_o carnal_a delight_n voluptuous_a man_n do_v daily_o study_v how_o to_o satisfy_v their_o soul_n with_o unprofitable_a pleasure_n and_o worldly_a mind_a man_n set_v their_o heart_n upon_o covetousness_n and_o upon_o the_o pomp_n and_o vanity_n of_o this_o present_a world_n these_o and_o the_o like_a kind_n of_o man_n be_v so_o press_v down_o with_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n and_o they_o be_v so_o encumber_v with_o worldly_a care_n and_o sinful_a delight_n that_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o mount_v up_o towards_o heaven_n in_o their_o affection_n and_o no_o heart_n fit_a for_o divine_a contemplation_n because_o they_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v have_v no_o spiritual_a light_n to_o discern_v aright_o of_o heavenly_a thing_n but_o a_o true_a believe_a christian_n have_v the_o light_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o give_v he_o spiritual_a understanding_n he_o have_v strength_n of_o grace_n to_o withstand_v all_o spiritual_a let_n and_o hindrance_n and_o to_o raise_v up_o his_o affection_n above_o all_o earthly_a thing_n &_o with_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v mount_v up_o above_o all_o the_o block_n and_o impediment_n that_o the_o devil_n or_o wicked_a man_n can_v cast_v in_o his_o way_n to_o depress_v his_o spirit_n and_o to_o keep_v down_o the_o cogitation_n of_o his_o heart_n from_o pious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o dear_a of_o god_n servant_n can_v sometime_o perform_v this_o religious_a duty_n as_o they_o shall_v because_o they_o do_v often_o find_v the_o flesh_n to_o war_n against_o the_o spirit_n 23._o spirit_n rom._n 7._o 21_o 23._o as_o paul_n do_v and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o yoke_v with_o their_o unregenerate_a part_n that_o when_o they_o will_v do_v good_a either_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n evil_a be_v present_a with_o they_o which_o do_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o their_o conscience_n the_o quiet_a of_o their_o mind_n and_o the_o freedom_n of_o their_o spirit_n and_o do_v also_o stop_v the_o sweet_a influence_n of_o comfort_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o their_o soul_n but_o especial_o they_o be_v hinder_v in_o their_o meditation_n which_o be_v a_o duty_n mere_o spiritual_a and_o can_v be_v perform_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n yet_o through_o christ_n they_o get_v the_o victory_n and_o they_o will_v break_v through_o all_o opposition_n because_o 22._o because_o rom._n 7._o 22._o they_o delight_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o in_o heavenly_a contemplation_n after_o the_o inward_a man_n and_o their_o mind_n will_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n to_o serve_v he_o 25._o he_o rom._n 7._o 25._o though_o with_o the_o flesh_n they_o do_v sometime_o serve_v the_o law_n of_o sin_n if_o we_o have_v give_v up_o our_o name_n unto_o christ_n and_o be_v list_v in_o his_o roll_n to_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n we_o must_v look_v for_o continual_a conflict_n and_o combat_n with_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n which_o daily_o seek_v to_o ruin_v our_o soul_n by_o hinder_v we_o in_o our_o religious_a duty_n but_o we_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v comfort_n in_o christ_n and_o power_n from_o he_o to_o prevail_v against_o they_o and_o to_o get_v the_o conquest_n over_o they_o all_o if_o we_o can_v raise_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o contemplate_v his_o omnipotent_a power_n his_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o his_o wonderful_a care_n of_o we_o sometime_o
we_o have_v conflict_n with_o pleasure_n and_o plenty_n sometime_o with_o affliction_n and_o penury_n with_o sin_n and_o temptation_n with_o pain_n and_o sickness_n and_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n all_o which_o for_o a_o time_n may_v hinder_v the_o freedom_n of_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o can_v compose_v our_o thought_n nor_o settle_v our_o heart_n for_o holy_a meditation_n but_o we_o shall_v recover_v ourselves_o again_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n who_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o hold_v we_o up_o against_o all_o opposition_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o set_v our_o heart_n in_o such_o a_o frame_n as_o be_v fit_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o holy_a duty_n wherefore_o 12._o wherefore_o eph._n 6._o 11_o 12._o see_v we_o wrestle_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o against_o principality_n against_o power_n against_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n and_o against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a place_n we_o must_v put_v on_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o wile_n of_o the_o devil_n 4._o devil_n 2_o cor._n 10._o 3_o 4._o though_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o flesh_n we_o do_v not_o war_n after_o the_o flesh_n for_o the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o mighty_a through_o god_n to_o the_o pull_v down_o of_o strong_a hold_n cast_v down_o imagination_n and_o every_o high_a thing_n that_o exalt_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v into_o captivity_n every_o thought_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o power_n that_o pull_v down_o the_o strong_a hold_n of_o sin_n in_o we_o and_o the_o sinful_a imagination_n of_o our_o mind_n will_v also_o raise_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o devout_a and_o pious_a meditation_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n the_o more_o free_a we_o keep_v our_o heart_n from_o worldly_a care_n and_o our_o mind_n from_o sinful_a thought_n the_o fit_a we_o shall_v be_v for_o this_o holy_a duty_n the_o better_a we_o shall_v perform_v it_o and_o we_o shall_v reap_v the_o more_o comfort_n by_o it_o but_o unregenerate_a man_n be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o this_o spiritual_a armour_n they_o have_v no_o power_n against_o their_o spiritual_a enemy_n they_o have_v no_o weapon_n fit_a for_o this_o warfare_n for_o until_o they_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o their_o natural_a condition_n into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n &_o have_v interest_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n they_o be_v so_o clog_v with_o their_o worldly_a affair_n so_o wed_v to_o earthly_a vanity_n and_o so_o entangle_v with_o the_o corruption_n of_o their_o nature_n that_o there_o be_v no_o room_n in_o their_o heart_n for_o any_o holy_a contemplation_n and_o they_o have_v no_o grace_n that_o can_v give_v they_o strength_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n the_o enticement_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o cunning_a stratagem_n of_o the_o devil_n how_o dreadful_a it_o be_v to_o meditate_v on_o god_n now_o prepare_v thy_o heart_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o thy_o soul_n by_o those_o former_a direction_n and_o by_o prayer_n to_o meditate_v on_o 4._o on_o neh._n 1._o 5._o psal_n 47._o 2._o dan._n 9_o 4._o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a god_n who_o in_o himself_o be_v infinite_a in_o majesty_n and_o eternal_a in_o glory_n and_o the_o great_a creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o earth_n who_o essence_n and_o be_v be_v incomprehensible_a for_o thou_o can_v not_o but_o stand_v confound_v at_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o greatness_n which_o the_o bless_a angel_n be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v wherefore_o empty_a thy_o heart_n of_o all_o sinful_a cogitation_n and_o lay_v aside_o all_o thy_o worldly_a care_n that_o thou_o may_v free_o set_v thy_o mind_n upon_o god_n to_o contemplate_v with_o all_o fear_n &_o due_a reverence_n something_o of_o his_o excellency_n and_o greatness_n so_o far_o as_o god_n have_v reveal_v himself_o and_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o that_o heavenly_a knowledge_n which_o he_o have_v give_v thou_o let_v thy_o meditation_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v guide_v with_o good_a understanding_n and_o let_v they_o be_v bound_v with_o christian_a sobriety_n lest_o thou_o be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o depth_n of_o this_o infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a ocean_n let_v thy_o faith_n regulate_v thou_o in_o thy_o meditation_n for_o what_o thou_o can_v not_o comprehend_v thou_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v because_o thou_o do_v deal_v with_o the_o hide_a thing_n of_o god_n 6._o god_n joh._n 5._o 6._o who_o be_v truth_n itself_o thus_o meditate_v with_o dreadful_a reverence_n on_o the_o high_a and_o mighty_a god_n for_o as_o he_o be_v infinite_a in_o his_o essence_n so_o he_o be_v also_o infinite_a in_o all_o his_o divine_a attribute_n wherefore_o content_n thyself_o with_o what_o he_o have_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o work_n and_o do_v not_o curious_o search_v into_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o to_o be_v know_v but_o be_v seal_v up_o in_o his_o own_o secret_a counsel_n until_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v hereafter_o to_o reveal_v they_o 19_o they_o 1_o sam._n 6._o 19_o the_o lord_n smite_v the_o man_n of_o bethshemesh_n with_o a_o very_a great_a slaughter_n because_o they_o look_v into_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o any_o save_v only_o to_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n beware_v then_o that_o he_o smite_v not_o thou_o if_o thou_o presume_v to_o look_v further_o into_o his_o secret_a counsel_n than_o christ_n have_v reveal_v if_o we_o due_o consider_v the_o transcendent_a majesty_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n it_o will_v cast_v great_a dreadfullnesse_n into_o our_o meditation_n for_o it_o will_v dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o understanding_n far_o more_o than_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sun_n beam_n can_v dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o body_n which_o may_v strong_o move_v we_o to_o a_o dreadful_a fear_n and_o reverence_n of_o he_o 22_o he_o job_n 37._o 22_o for_o as_o elihu_n say_v to_o job_n with_o god_n be_v terrible_a majesty_n also_o job_n speak_v thus_o of_o god_n to_o his_o three_o friend_n 11._o friend_n job_n 13._o 11._o shall_v not_o his_o his_o excellency_n make_v you_o afraid_a and_o his_o dreadfall_n upon_o you_o 17._o you_o gen._n 28._o 17._o how_o dreadful_a say_v jacob_n be_v this_o place_n and_o it_o be_v because_o god_n be_v there_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n by_o his_o prophet_n 14._o prophet_n mal._n 1._o 14._o i_o be_o a_o great_a king_n and_o my_o name_n be_v dreadful_a among_o the_o heathen_a 21._o heathen_a heb._n 12._o 21._o when_o god_n give_v the_o law_n at_o mount_n sinai_n the_o sight_n be_v so_o terrible_a that_o moses_n himself_o say_v i_o exceed_o fear_v and_o quake_v 34._o quake_v exod._n 34._o moses_n do_v earnest_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o face_n of_o god_n to_o who_o he_o give_v this_o answer_n that_o no_o man_n can_v see_v he_o and_o live_v but_o yet_o to_o satisfy_v his_o request_n and_o to_o show_v he_o in_o part_n what_o a_o terrible_a and_o glorious_a god_n he_o be_v he_o tell_v moses_n that_o he_o shall_v see_v some_o piece_n of_o his_o glory_n but_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v needful_a he_o shall_v hide_v himself_o in_o the_o hole_n of_o a_o rock_n and_o be_v cover_v with_o god_n own_o hand_n for_o his_o defence_n while_o god_n in_o some_o measure_n of_o his_o majesty_n do_v pass_v by_o in_o his_o glory_n and_o when_o he_o be_v past_a god_n take_v away_o his_o hand_n and_o suffer_v he_o to_o see_v his_o hinder_a part_n only_o which_o be_v notwithstanding_o most_o terrible_a to_o behold_v 7._o behold_v dan._n 7._o daniel_n also_o do_v see_v in_o a_o vision_n the_o majesty_n of_o this_o great_a and_o terrible_a god_n which_o be_v record_v in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n to_o teach_v we_o thereby_o what_o a_o prince_n of_o majesty_n be_v and_o how_o dreadful_a in_o his_o judgement_n when_o he_o be_v offend_v now_o consider_v what_o make_v it_o so_o dreadful_a to_o meditate_v on_o god_n it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o incomprehensible_a and_o divine_a essence_n or_o the_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n or_o his_o infinite_a power_n whereby_o all_o creature_n all_o principality_n and_o power_n be_v under_o his_o subjection_n but_o also_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o frailty_n and_o weakness_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o vileness_n of_o our_o condition_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o many_o sin_n wherewith_o we_o have_v offend_v he_o and_o just_o incur_v his_o high_a displeasure_n and_o have_v deserve_v his_o wrath_n and_o fury_n to_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o we_o whereby_o we_o stand_v in_o continual_a fear_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o of_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n for_o
will_v still_o molest_v and_o trouble_v we_o and_o there_o be_v no_o evil_a in_o our_o affliction_n and_o suffering_n because_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o be_v change_v into_o fatherly_a chastisement_n which_o conduce_v to_o our_o good_a and_o not_o to_o our_o hurt_n also_o we_o may_v draw_v great_a consolation_n from_o our_o adoption_n if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o the_o right_n which_o we_o have_v thereby_o to_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o all_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n to_o all_o his_o blessing_n to_o whatsoever_o be_v good_a for_o we_o or_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o and_o also_o to_o a_o heavenly_a inheritance_n after_o this_o life_n be_v end_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n they_o will_v afford_v we_o matter_n enough_o of_o comfortable_a meditation_n for_o if_o we_o search_v the_o scripture_n 1._o scripture_n zech._n 13._o 1._o we_o shall_v find_v a_o fountain_n of_o mercy_n that_o god_n have_v open_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o sin_n and_o for_o nucleannesse_n wherein_o we_o may_v wash_v away_o all_o the_o guilt_n and_o stain_n of_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o can_v apply_v the_o stream_n thereof_o to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n this_o fountain_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o mean_v 10_o mean_v joh._n 4._o 10_o in_o christ_n we_o shall_v find_v water_n of_o life_n to_o refresh_v our_o pant_a soul_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n or_o lie_v languish_v under_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n 58._o sin_n john_n 6._o 48._o 58._o christ_n be_v also_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n whereof_o if_o we_o eat_v by_o faith_n we_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o 11_o ever_o col._n 3._o 11_o thus_o christ_n be_v make_v all_o in_o all_o to_o we_o by_o faith_n 13._o faith_n 1_o cor._n 1_o 13._o for_o he_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n his_o wisdom_n will_v teach_v we_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n it_o will_v guide_v we_o in_o it_o and_o it_o will_v dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n for_o our_o good_a his_o righteousness_n be_v a_o garment_n of_o salvation_n to_o we_o his_o spirit_n of_o grace_n will_v enrich_v we_o with_o all_o heavenly_a endowment_n to_o lead_v a_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a life_n and_o conversation_n also_o 4_o also_o psal_n 103_o 3_o 4_o by_o his_o redemption_n all_o our_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v all_o our_o spiritual_a disease_n be_v heal_v our_o life_n be_v redeem_v from_o destruction_n and_o we_o be_v crown_v with_o love_a kindness_n and_o tender_a mercy_n let_v we_o consider_v also_o for_o our_o further_a comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n on_o god_n 17_o god_n eph._n 3._o 17_o that_o christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n do_v spiritual_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o he_o do_v not_o come_v to_o lodge_v with_o we_o as_o a_o guest_n or_o to_o sojourn_v there_o for_o a_o time_n and_o then_o to_o be_v go_v from_o we_o but_o he_o come_v to_o abide_v and_o to_o dwell_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o he_o have_v take_v up_o his_o habitation_n there_o and_o our_o faith_n will_v cleave_v so_o close_o to_o he_o that_o he_o will_v never_o depart_v from_o we_o neither_o will_v he_o suffer_v we_o to_o depart_v from_o he_o we_o read_v that_o ittai_n the_o gittite_n one_o of_o david_n worthy_n will_v not_o leave_v the_o king_n when_o he_o flee_v from_o his_o son_n absalon_n but_o he_o answer_v the_o king_n in_o this_o manner_n 21_o manner_n 2_o sam._n 15_o 21_o as_o the_o lord_n live_v and_o as_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n live_v sure_o in_o what_o place_n my_o lord_n the_o king_n shall_v be_v whether_o in_o death_n or_o life_n even_o there_o also_o will_v thy_o servant_n be_v thus_o close_o do_v our_o faith_n cleave_v unto_o christ_n for_o it_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o leave_v he_o neither_o will_v he_o leave_v we_o but_o our_o faith_n will_v be_v still_o with_o christ_n both_o in_o life_n and_o in_o death_n o_o happy_a be_v our_o condition_n if_o we_o have_v such_o a_o inhabitant_n in_o our_o heart_n if_o christ_n have_v settle_v his_o abode_n there_o he_o will_v execute_v his_o priestly_a office_n to_o make_v intercession_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n for_o we_o 3_o we_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 3_o and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o a_o royal_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o ourselves_o and_o our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o present_v unto_o he_o our_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n our_o thanks_o and_o praise_n for_o blessing_n and_o mercy_n receive_v and_o a_o break_a and_o contrite_a heart_n for_o sin_n commit_v which_o sacrifice_n god_n will_v not_o refuse_v christ_n will_v also_o execute_v his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o the_o right_a way_n to_o true_a holiness_n and_o godliness_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o how_o to_o attain_v unto_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v so_o likewise_o christ_n will_v rule_v and_o reign_v in_o our_o heart_n as_o king_n by_o his_o spirit_n of_o grace_n to_o order_n and_o govern_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n and_o action_n to_o over-rule_v and_o subdue_v all_o the_o spiritual_a enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o protect_v and_o keep_v we_o from_o all_o peril_n and_o danger_n to_o provide_v for_o we_o what_o be_v needful_a for_o our_o good_a and_o also_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o in_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o keep_v we_o out_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o 8_o and_o 2_o tim._n 4._o 8_o to_o give_v we_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o he_o have_v lay_v up_o for_o we_o at_o the_o day_n of_o his_o appear_v here_o be_v yet_o more_o matter_n of_o comfort_n to_o be_v draw_v from_o christ_n in_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o when_o he_o do_v spiritual_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o do_v enjoy_v his_o sacred_a society_n for_o he_o do_v clothe_v we_o with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o he_o do_v endow_v we_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n for_o our_o sanctification_n that_o through_o he_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o overcome_v the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o so_o to_o overpower_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n that_o our_o sinful_a lust_n and_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o our_o flesh_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o 16_o we_o rom_n 8._o 16_o and_o his_o spirit_n will_v bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n christ_n will_v also_o put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n to_o discern_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o a_o natural_a man_n can_v do_v and_o to_o know_v our_o own_o condition_n from_o whence_o we_o be_v fall_v and_o how_o to_o be_v recover_v he_o will_v give_v we_o grace_n upon_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o be_v true_o humble_v for_o they_o to_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o delight_v to_o dwell_v with_o those_o that_o be_v of_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n according_a as_o he_o speak_v by_o his_o prophet_n 15_o prophet_n isaiah_n 57_o 15_o thus_o say_v the_o high_a and_o lofty_a one_o that_o inhabit_v eternity_n who_o name_n be_v holy_a i_o dwell_v in_o the_o high_a and_o lofty_a place_n with_o he_o also_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrite_a and_o humble_a spirit_n to_o revive_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o humble_a and_o to_o revive_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o contrite_a one_o christ_n will_v also_o change_v the_o perversenenesse_n of_o the_o will_n to_o put_v it_o into_o a_o frame_n of_o conformity_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v take_v off_o the_o immoderate_a affection_n of_o our_o heart_n from_o all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n to_o study_v holiness_n of_o life_n to_o love_v that_o which_o christ_n love_v to_o delight_v in_o his_o commandment_n and_o in_o his_o ordinance_n and_o to_o practice_v with_o a_o willing_a mind_n all_o holy_a duty_n which_o he_o require_v both_o to_o god_n and_o to_o our_o neighbour_n in_o public_a and_o in_o private_a at_o home_n in_o our_o family_n and_o to_o other_o upon_o all_o occasion_n then_o we_o shall_v find_v heavenly_a joy_n and_o spiritual_a consolation_n when_o we_o set_v our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v thus_o on_o god_n in_o christ_n wherefore_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o great_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n which_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n shall_v be_v strong_a and_o prevalent_a motive_n to_o we_o to_o prepare_v our_o heart_n to_o receive_v he_o to_o enlarge_v our_o
conscience_n with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o burden_n heavy_a than_o we_o can_v bear_v thus_o say_v the_o wise_a man_n 14_o man_n prov._n 18._o 14_o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a comfort_n in_o these_o or_o the_o like_a affliction_n but_o what_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o hope_n of_o succour_n or_o relief_n in_o our_o distress_n without_o he_o if_o our_o spirit_n be_v wound_v he_o only_o can_v apply_v the_o true_a balm_n of_o gilead_n to_o cure_v they_o this_o balm_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o universal_a remedy_n to_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o none_o but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v apply_v it_o to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n also_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o refresh_v we_o with_o the_o comfort_n of_o grace_n and_o with_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o sink_v under_o the_o great_a weight_n of_o our_o calamity_n and_o misery_n but_o we_o may_v draw_v comfort_n enough_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o what_o sad_a condition_n soever_o we_o be_v for_o he_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o our_o suffering_n with_o true_a peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n he_o will_v sanctify_v all_o our_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n with_o save_a grace_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o our_o good_a and_o will_v witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n also_o he_o will_v give_v we_o strength_n and_o courage_n to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o christ_n and_o for_o righteousness_n sake_n and_o likewise_o heavenly_a wisdom_n right_o to_o use_v every_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n to_o defend_v ourselves_o from_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n and_o to_o beat_v back_o or_o quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o his_o temptation_n and_o evil_a suggestion_n may_v not_o wound_v our_o soul_n to_o the_o death_n last_o he_o will_v perfect_v all_o with_o the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trial_n and_o we_o shall_v have_v assure_v hope_n of_o conquest_n and_o victory_n in_o all_o our_o conflict_n and_o combat_n here_o and_o to_o be_v crown_v with_o immortal_a glory_n hereafter_o now_o let_v this_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o draw_v comfort_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o we_o be_v afflict_v trouble_a or_o any_o way_n perplex_v with_o grief_n of_o heart_n sorrow_n of_o spirit_n or_o anguish_n of_o soul_n which_o we_o may_v do_v if_o we_o know_v that_o no_o outward_a comfort_n can_v support_v we_o without_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o rest_v and_o rely_v upon_o they_o but_o do_v seek_v to_o the_o true_a comforter_n by_o earnest_n and_o faithful_a prayer_n in_o all_o our_o necessity_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a mean_n to_o draw_v comfort_n from_o he_o when_o we_o want_v it_o also_o if_o we_o be_v true_o sensible_a that_o we_o do_v want_v his_o gracious_a assistance_n to_o carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o world_n upon_o our_o humble_a supplication_n to_o he_o he_o will_v return_v we_o a_o comfortable_a answer_n as_o shall_v be_v best_a for_o we_o so_o likewise_o if_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n do_v stick_v close_o unto_o we_o or_o if_o we_o possess_v our_o former_a iniquity_n by_o a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o they_o so_o that_o we_o be_v true_o humble_v in_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o they_o and_o that_o our_o heart_n be_v touch_v with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v then_o come_v with_o spiritual_a consolation_n to_o comfort_v our_o poor_a soul_n with_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o all_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n last_o we_o may_v draw_v comfort_n from_o this_o spiritual_a fountain_n by_o our_o pious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n of_o he_o for_o than_o he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o sweet_a taste_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o he_o will_v give_v we_o spiritual_a joy_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o our_o affliction_n also_o he_o will_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o will_v seal_v our_o redemption_n to_o we_o by_o his_o blood_n whereby_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v eternal_a felicity_n for_o ever_o o_o what_o sweet_a meditation_n may_v we_o draw_v from_o this_o heavenly_a comforter_n in_o all_o the_o sadness_n of_o our_o heart_n thus_o we_o may_v meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o be_v the_o true_a comforter_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v of_o his_o divine_a operation_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v also_o draw_v much_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n and_o for_o our_o better_a understanding_n herein_o this_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o life_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o several_a resemblance_n to_o show_v in_o what_o manner_n and_o how_o various_o he_o work_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o our_o meditation_n may_v be_v order_v according_o first_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o dove_n for_o when_o christ_n be_v baptize_v 16_o baptize_v mat._n 3._o 16_o he_o descend_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o rest_v upon_o he_o which_o be_v to_o show_v his_o spiritual_a anoint_v to_o his_o office_n of_o mediatorship_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christ_n how_o humble_a and_o and_o meek_a he_o be_v how_o innocent_a and_o harmless_a how_o love_v and_o how_o ready_a and_o willing_a he_o be_v to_o do_v good_a to_o all_o these_o dovelike_a quality_n be_v pour_v upon_o christ_n above_o measure_n that_o we_o his_o member_n may_v receive_v the_o same_o in_o some_o measure_n from_o he_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o will_v put_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n into_o a_o new_a frame_n he_o will_v change_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n into_o a_o holy_a temper_n of_o proud_a and_o haughty_a mind_v he_o will_v make_v we_o lowly_a and_o meek_a of_o hateful_a and_o malicious_a he_o will_v make_v we_o love_v and_o courteous_a to_o all_o he_o will_v so_o season_v we_o with_o sanctify_a grace_n throughout_o that_o our_o evil_a disposition_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o a_o gracious_a condition_n this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n will_v bring_v we_o a_o olive_n leaf_n 11_o leaf_n gen._n 8._o 11_o like_o noah_n dove_n to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o trouble_n danger_n or_o distress_n yet_o we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v and_o deliver_v and_o though_o we_o be_v trouble_v disquiet_v or_o perplex_v in_o our_o mind_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o we_o shall_v have_v peace_n tranquillity_n spiritual_a joy_n and_o comfort_v now_o by_o this_o resemblance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v examine_v ourselves_o what_o purity_n and_o holiness_n he_o have_v wrought_v in_o we_o what_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n what_o patience_n under_o the_o cross_n what_o love_n to_o god_n and_o to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v sanctify_v in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n &_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n also_o how_o much_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n be_v weaken_v in_o we_o and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v change_v from_o that_o which_o be_v sinful_a to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o can_v find_v these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o we_o they_o will_v afford_v we_o profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n second_o some_o of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o resemblance_n of_o that_o 21_o that_o exod._n 13_o 21_o pillar_n of_o a_o cloud_n which_o go_v before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n by_o day_n when_o they_o march_v out_o of_o egypt_n to_o guide_v they_o the_o right_a way_n that_o god_n will_v have_v they_o go_v towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n this_o pillar_n do_v also_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o from_o their_o enemy_n it_o keep_v the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o the_o sun_n from_o they_o and_o it_o cool_v and_o moisten_v the_o earth_n with_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a dew_n which_o be_v a_o great_a refresh_n
to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o their_o march_n through_o that_o hot_a country_n we_o be_v by_o nature_n under_o the_o spiritual_a bondage_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n which_o be_v far_o worse_a than_o the_o egyptian_a bondage_n be_v to_o the_o israelite_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o it_o but_o by_o a_o almighty_a power_n and_o if_o god_n do_v deliver_v we_o yet_o we_o be_v so_o ignorant_a of_o the_o way_n to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n that_o we_o can_v set_v one_o step_n towards_o it_o except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o right_a way_n to_o heavenly_a happiness_n and_o because_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o many_o spiritual_a enemy_n so_o long_o as_o we_o march_v through_o the_o wilderness_n of_o this_o world_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v so_o protect_v and_o defend_v we_o that_o they_o shall_v neither_o hurt_v our_o soul_n by_o their_o power_n nor_o keep_v we_o out_o of_o canaan_n by_o their_o subtlety_n or_o malice_n he_o will_v guide_v and_o direct_v we_o into_o all_o holy_a duty_n he_o will_v give_v we_o holy_a desire_n and_o true_a endeavour_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o to_o walk_v humble_o before_o he_o in_o this_o present_a world_n also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v protect_v we_o from_o the_o heat_n of_o god_n wrath_n by_o work_a faith_n in_o we_o to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o confer_v grace_n for_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n so_o likewise_o he_o do_v refresh_v and_o comfort_v our_o faint_a spirit_n with_o the_o sweet_a dew_n of_o heavenly_a consolation_n and_o he_o do_v mollify_v and_o soften_v our_o obdurate_a and_o stony_a heart_n with_o those_o influence_n of_o grace_n that_o descend_v from_o he_o that_o we_o may_v 23._o may_v joel_n 2._o 28_o gal._n 5._o 22_o 23._o be_v fruitful_a in_o all_o good_a work_n this_o holy_a spirit_n do_v also_o quench_v the_o fire_n of_o sin_n which_o otherwise_o will_v inflame_v the_o whole_a man_n with_o sinful_a lust_n and_o last_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v purge_v and_o cleanse_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o filth_n of_o sin_n as_o water_n wash_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o body_n this_o do_v god_n promise_v by_o his_o prophet_n 25._o prophet_n zech._n 36_o 25._o i_o will_v pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v clean_o from_o all_o your_o filthiness_n and_o from_o all_o your_o idol_n will_v i_o cleanse_v you_o wherefore_o we_o ought_v serious_o to_o ruminate_v upon_o these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o we_o can_v find_v the_o right_a way_n to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n by_o all_o that_o nature_n or_o humane_a learning_n can_v afford_v we_o we_o can_v over_o power_n our_o spiritual_a enemy_n by_o our_o own_o strength_n we_o have_v no_o holy_a desire_n and_o no_o ability_n in_o ourselves_o to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a nothing_o that_o be_v in_o our_o power_n can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o we_o have_v nothing_o that_o can_v refresh_v and_o and_o comfort_v our_o afflict_a spirit_n but_o here_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v be_v our_o guide_n to_o this_o heavenly_a country_n he_o will_v be_v our_o protector_n against_o all_o adversary_n power_n and_o he_o will_v be_v a_o true_a comforter_n to_o we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n he_o will_v bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o will_v firm_o unite_v we_o unto_o he_o by_o faith_n 2._o faith_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 1_o 2._o for_o as_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v all_o under_o the_o cloud_n and_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o sea_n and_o be_v all_o baptize_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n so_o we_o be_v baptize_v unto_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o his_o blood_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v sanctify_v by_o this_o spirit_n of_o grace_n to_o live_v in_o true_a holiness_n and_o righteousness_n all_o our_o day_n if_o we_o can_v thus_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o will_v be_v exceed_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n three_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o the_o pillar_n of_o fire_n that_o conduct_v the_o israelite_n by_o night_n out_o of_o egypt_n towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n now_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o such_o as_o be_v the_o property_n of_o fire_n such_o be_v some_o of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n fire_n be_v the_o most_o pure_a element_n and_o purify_v all_o other_o element_n it_o do_v natural_o mount_v upward_o it_o be_v bright_a and_o shine_a and_o give_v light_a to_o all_o dark_a place_n it_o do_v also_o warm_a and_o comfort_v every_o part_n of_o our_o body_n and_o it_o be_v the_o most_o active_a of_o all_o the_o other_o element_n it_o purify_v the_o gold_n and_o burn_v away_o the_o dross_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o be_v essential_o pure_a in_o himself_o and_o purify_v every_o soul_n from_o dead_a work_n into_o which_o he_o come_v he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o unclean_a lust_n or_o evil_a concupiscence_n to_o have_v dominion_n where_o he_o dwell_v and_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o the_o cogitation_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o mount_v upward_o in_o heavenly_a contemplation_n also_o whereas_o by_o nature_n 11._o nature_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 10_o 11._o we_o can_v receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o we_o neither_o can_v we_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v god_n have_v reveal_v they_o to_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o heart_n to_o discern_v the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n he_o will_v also_o inflame_v our_o affection_n with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o will_v make_v our_o love_n fervent_a to_o the_o truth_n so_o likewise_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v melt_v our_o hard_a and_o stony_a heart_n and_o make_v they_o tender_a and_o gracious_a flexible_a and_o yield_a to_o every_o holy_a duty_n and_o whereas_o our_o heart_n be_v natural_o bind_v up_o in_o unbelief_n and_o heavy_a and_o sluggish_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a 32._o good_a psal_n 119._o 32._o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v so_o enlarge_v they_o that_o with_o all_o cheerfulness_n of_o spirit_n and_o willingness_n of_o mind_n we_o shall_v run_v the_o way_n of_o god_n commandment_n wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o have_v find_v any_o of_o these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v be_v in_o some_o measure_n purify_v and_o refine_v from_o our_o sin_n and_o pollution_n we_o shall_v have_v some_o of_o the_o dross_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n consume_v and_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n will_v shine_v forth_o in_o the_o integrity_n of_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n also_o we_o shall_v have_v some_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v our_o darken_a understanding_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o way_n some_o fervency_n in_o our_o prayer_n some_o love_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o some_o holy_a zeal_n to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v delight_v in_o his_o law_n we_o shall_v study_v to_o do_v good_a work_n and_o it_o will_v be_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n if_o these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v resemble_v to_o these_o two_o pillar_n can_v easy_o work_v upon_o we_o if_o these_o can_v raise_v up_o our_o affection_n to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o to_o be_v forward_o and_o ready_a to_o every_o good_a duty_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n then_o sure_o we_o be_v exceed_o dull_a and_o stupid_a and_o we_o have_v great_a need_n to_o pray_v earnest_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v be_v please_v to_o come_v with_o his_o unresistible_a power_n and_o break_v our_o hard_a &_o stony_a heart_n and_o mollify_v this_o extreme_a obduracy_n that_o be_v in_o they_o with_o his_o supply_a grace_n that_o so_o we_o may_v more_o easy_o take_v the_o impression_n of_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n in_o we_o consider_v further_o that_o these_o two_o pillar_n which_o do_v lead_v the_o israelite_n out_o of_o egypt_n be_v a_o visible_a sign_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n with_o they_o to_o conduct_v they_o in_o the_o way_n to_o canaan_n to_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o from_o all_o their_o
tree_n until_o we_o have_v seal_v the_o servant_n of_o our_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v also_o seal_v the_o new_a covenant_n and_o all_o the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n 33._o faith_n joh._n 3._o 33._o and_o if_o we_o receive_v his_o testimony_n we_o do_v set_v to_o our_o seal_n that_o god_n be_v true_a why_o then_o do_v we_o not_o rest_v upon_o they_o why_o be_v our_o faith_n shake_v with_o every_o gust_n of_o temptation_n and_o with_o every_o little_a trouble_n that_o come_v near_o we_o be_v we_o so_o weak_a in_o faith_n that_o every_o blast_n of_o affliction_n shall_v blow_v we_o down_o why_o be_v we_o so_o doubtful_a of_o our_o salvation_n that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o let_v go_v our_o hold_n on_o christ_n when_o we_o look_v upon_o our_o daily_a slip_n and_o fail_n that_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o enchantment_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o allurement_n of_o our_o carnal_a lust_n we_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n and_o when_o we_o suffer_v affliction_n or_o tribulation_n we_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o hurt_v we_o for_o we_o have_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n in_o our_o forehead_n and_o he_o will_v sanctify_v all_o our_o sorrow_n for_o our_o good_a whereas_o to_o the_o wicked_a they_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o those_o eternal_a torment_n which_o they_o shall_v suffer_v hereafter_o for_o ever_o here_o we_o may_v find_v sweet_a consolation_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n for_o if_o we_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v this_o world_n and_o those_o possession_n which_o we_o do_v here_o enjoy_v let_v our_o heart_n and_o mind_n be_v raise_v up_o to_o meditate_v upon_o that_o inheritance_n and_o those_o possession_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o by_o his_o blood_n which_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o have_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o leave_v these_o vain_a and_o earthly_a riches_n and_o we_o shall_v earnest_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v those_o heavenly_a and_o durable_a treasure_n which_o be_v there_o lay_v up_o for_o we_o if_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v shake_v this_o seal_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v settle_v it_o sure_a the_o lord_n know_v they_o that_o be_v he_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v confirm_v to_o we_o by_o this_o seal_n and_o we_o may_v faithful_o rest_v upon_o it_o for_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n therein_o contain_v shall_v be_v perform_v in_o their_o season_n our_o spiritual_a enemy_n our_o cross_n and_o tribulation_n and_o death_n itself_o can_v hurt_v we_o because_o we_o have_v this_o seal_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o will_v take_v away_o the_o print_n of_o the_o devil_n seal_v which_o by_o nature_n be_v upon_o our_o heart_n and_o will_v stamp_v his_o own_o image_n in_o the_o room_n 5_o room_n rev._n 9_o 4._o 5_o but_o those_o man_n that_o have_v not_o the_o seal_n of_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n lie_v open_a to_o all_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n to_o be_v torment_v as_o with_o the_o torment_n of_o a_o scorpion_n when_o he_o strike_v a_o man_n last_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o wind_n for_o when_o he_o have_v any_o great_a work_n to_o do_v in_o we_o he_o will_v come_v with_o power_n to_o rectify_v our_o stubborn_a will_n our_o obdurate_a heart_n and_o rebellious_a affection_n he_o will_v come_v like_o a_o rush_a wind_n to_o make_v we_o quake_v and_o tremble_v before_o he_o and_o to_o beat_v down_o all_o the_o strong_a hold_v of_o sin_n that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v he_o and_o that_o he_o may_v free_o work_v his_o own_o work_n in_o we_o thus_o he_o come_v upon_o the_o apostle_n 3_o apostle_n act._n 2._o 2_o 3_o with_o a_o sound_n from_o heaven_n as_o of_o a_o rush_v mighty_a wind_n and_o fill_v all_o the_o house_n where_o they_o be_v sit_v and_o then_o he_o give_v they_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n to_o speak_v the_o language_n of_o every_o nation_n whither_o he_o shall_v send_v they_o and_o he_o give_v they_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o ability_n fit_a for_o that_o office_n and_o function_n whereunto_o he_o have_v call_v they_o second_o he_o be_v resemble_v to_o wind_n because_o his_o operation_n be_v free_a to_o himself_o and_o he_o be_v no_o way_n necessitate_v in_o his_o working_n for_o he_o work_v in_o every_o one_o when_o and_o how_o he_o please_v thus_o say_v christ_n to_o nicodemus_n 3._o nicodemus_n john_n 8._o 3._o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v and_o thou_o hear_v the_o sound_n thereof_o but_o can_v not_o tell_v whence_o it_o come_v and_o whither_o it_o go_v so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n god_n election_n be_v of_o free_a grace_n not_o of_o work_n 4._o work_n gen._n 4._o 4._o he_o have_v respect_n to_o abel_n and_o to_o his_o offering_n but_o he_o refuse_v cain_n and_o his_o offering_n 20._o offering_n rom._n 9_o 11_o 13_o 15_o 20._o god_n do_v choose_v jacob_n and_o reject_v esau_n the_o child_n be_v not_o yet_o bear_v for_o thus_o say_v god_n to_o moses_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o i_o will_v have_v compassion_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v compassion_n we_o be_v as_o clay_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o potter_n can_v he_o make_v of_o the_o same_o lump_n one_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n and_o another_o unto_o dishonour_n shall_v the_o thing_n form_v say_v unto_o he_o that_o form_v it_o why_o have_v thou_o make_v i_o thus_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n 10_o prophet_n isa_n 45._o 10_o woe_n unto_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o his_o father_n what_o begette_v thou_o or_o to_o his_o mother_n what_o have_v thou_o bring_v forth_o 6._o forth_o jer._n ●8_o 6._o for_o we_o be_v in_o god_n hand_n as_o the_o clay_n be_v in_o the_o potter_n hand_n so_o likewise_o 12._o likewise_o 1_o cor._n 12._o the_o holy_a ghost_n bestow_v his_o gift_n diverse_o some_o have_v one_o gift_n some_o another_o some_o have_v more_o and_o some_o have_v less_o none_o but_o christ_n have_v a_o fullness_n of_o all_o gift_n and_o 16_o and_o john_n 1._o 16_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n as_o there_o be_v great_a diversity_n in_o the_o gift_n 6._o gift_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 6._o so_o there_o be_v as_o great_a in_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o all_o proceed_v from_o the_o same_o spirit_n for_o god_n work_v all_o in_o all_o three_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o wind_n because_o he_o do_v blow_n away_o the_o chaff_n and_o vanity_n of_o our_o sinful_a invention_n and_o idle_a cogitation_n that_o our_o mind_n may_v be_v the_o better_o fit_v and_o prepare_v for_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o for_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n now_o to_o bring_v all_o this_o home_n in_o particular_a to_o thyself_o consider_v what_o comfort_n and_o benefit_n thou_o do_v enjoy_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o as_o he_o be_v the_o true_a comforter_n who_o christ_n send_v down_o from_o the_o father_n to_o abide_v with_o thou_o for_o ever_o and_o also_o by_o his_o holy_a operation_n according_a to_o those_o several_a resemblance_n and_o then_o thy_o meditation_n of_o he_o will_v be_v comfortable_a to_o thy_o soul_n he_o will_v be_v a_o careful_a father_n to_o provide_v for_o thou_o he_o will_v be_v a_o wall_n of_o defence_n round_o about_o thou_o he_o will_v dull_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o thy_o pain_n and_o torment_n that_o thou_o may_v the_o better_o bear_v they_o as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o three_o child_n in_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n and_o to_o some_o of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n in_o their_o torment_n though_o thy_o suffering_n be_v above_o humane_a strength_n yet_o he_o will_v give_v thou_o strength_n of_o grace_n to_o bear_v they_o content_o for_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o thy_o heart_n 20_o heart_n heb._n 11_o 20_o to_o look_v to_o the_o recompense_n of_o reward_n which_o god_n will_v give_v thou_o in_o heaven_n of_o his_o own_o free_a love_n bounty_n and_o goodness_n also_o if_o the_o cross_n lie_v long_o upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o can_v not_o get_v it_o remove_v by_o thy_o earnest_a supplication_n yet_o thou_o need_v not_o be_v out_o of_o hope_n for_o the_o heavenly_a comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v never_o fail_v thou_o but_o will_v still_o bear_v thou_o up_o against_o all_o the_o boisterous_a billow_n of_o temptation_n and_o sorrow_n though_o thy_o whole_a life_n be_v a_o life_n of_o misery_n yet_o the_o
end_n shall_v be_v comfortable_a to_o thou_o according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 38._o david_n ps_n 37._o 35_o 37_o 38._o mark_v the_o perfect_a man_n and_o behold_v the_o upright_a for_o the_o end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v peace_n but_o though_o the_o wicked_a be_v in_o great_a power_n spread_v themselves_o like_o a_o green_a bay_n tree_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v together_o and_o their_o end_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o if_o we_o have_v these_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n and_o much_o more_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o must_v then_o study_v how_o to_o be_v thankful_a to_o he_o for_o his_o goodness_n and_o how_o to_o express_v it_o by_o our_o conformity_n to_o his_o will_n and_o by_o our_o ready_a obedience_n to_o his_o holy_a motion_n also_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n unto_o he_o by_o fervent_a prayer_n for_o what_o we_o want_v as_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o his_o good_a pleasure_n to_o grant_v but_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n with_o what_o heart_n and_o with_o what_o affection_n we_o make_v our_o address_n unto_o he_o for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o secret_a or_o darling_a sin_n lurk_v in_o we_o he_o will_v easy_o find_v it_o out_o he_o can_v search_v into_o the_o most_o secret_a corner_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o his_o all_o see_v eye_n if_o our_o heart_n be_v more_o set_v upon_o carnal_a pleasure_n or_o worldly_a profit_n than_o to_o meditate_v on_o his_o gracious_a operation_n and_o how_o to_o enjoy_v he_o he_o will_v soon_o discover_v our_o hypocrisy_n and_o it_o will_v stop_v the_o current_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n but_o if_o he_o find_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n in_o our_o inward_a part_n he_o will_v then_o plentiful_o bestow_v his_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o grace_n upon_o we_o for_o he_o will_v give_v we_o more_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n more_o patience_n in_o our_o trouble_n more_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o more_o grace_n to_o cleanse_v and_o purge_v away_o the_o leprosy_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o he_o will_v put_v our_o hard_a and_o stony_a heart_n into_o a_o gracious_a condition_n fit_a to_o receive_v the_o print_n of_o his_o own_o image_n to_o seal_v unto_o we_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n no_o duty_n then_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n can_v be_v hard_a to_o we_o if_o we_o be_v guide_v by_o this_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o nothing_o that_o we_o suffer_v can_v be_v bitter_a to_o our_o soul_n if_o this_o heavenly_a comforter_n have_v make_v his_o abode_n in_o our_o heart_n in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o no_o save_v and_o sanctify_a grace_n can_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o can_v discern_v nothing_o of_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n for_o our_o comfort_n if_o we_o have_v not_o a_o spiritual_a light_n from_o he_o he_o work_v faith_n in_o we_o to_o unite_v we_o to_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v application_n to_o ourselves_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o suffering_n for_o our_o redemption_n he_o work_v repentance_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o manifest_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n in_o we_o by_o the_o mortify_n and_o kill_v of_o the_o power_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o quicken_a of_o we_o up_o unto_o newness_n of_o life_n the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v our_o filial_a love_n to_o god_n our_o hope_n in_o his_o promise_n our_o christian_a patience_n in_o bear_v the_o cross_n with_o a_o meek_a and_o a_o content_a mind_n our_o christian_a fortitude_n and_o courage_n in_o all_o our_o spiritual_a combat_n and_o trial_n and_o our_o constancy_n to_o hold_v out_o until_o we_o have_v obtain_v victory_n he_o give_v we_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o justification_n the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n ability_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o meditate_v on_o he_o as_o we_o ought_v and_o he_o work_v the_o renovation_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n in_o we_o these_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v as_o so_o many_o precious_a jewel_n to_o adorn_v our_o soul_n that_o we_o may_v be_v all_o glorious_a within_o 13_o within_o psal_n 45._o 13_o like_o solomon_n queen_n to_o be_v espouse_v unto_o christ_n for_o if_o we_o be_v deck_v with_o these_o ornament_n of_o grace_n and_o clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o cover_v the_o shame_n and_o the_o deformity_n of_o our_o sin_n than_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o offering_n and_o will_v hereafter_o wed_v we_o to_o his_o own_o son_n wherefore_o when_o we_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o partake_v of_o his_o divine_a ordinance_n or_o to_o perform_v any_o holy_a service_n unto_o he_o we_o must_v humble_o crave_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o give_v we_o understand_v heart_n and_o sanctify_a affection_n and_o to_o put_v a_o holy_a zeal_n into_o our_o prayer_n and_o meditation_n that_o they_o may_v mount_v up_o above_o all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o ascend_v up_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v and_o gracious_o accept_v 33._o accept_v act_n 7._o 30_o 32_o 33._o when_o moses_n perceive_v that_o god_n be_v in_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n in_o a_o bush_n he_o tremble_v and_o dare_v not_o behold_v until_o he_o have_v put_v off_o his_o shoe_n from_o his_o foot_n because_o the_o place_n where_o he_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n so_o likewise_o 14._o likewise_o josh_n 5._o 13_o 14._o though_o joshua_n be_v so_o valiant_a as_o to_o withstand_v a_o man_n of_o war_n that_o stand_v over_o against_o he_o with_o his_o sword_n draw_v in_o his_o hand_n yet_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o host_n of_o the_o lord_n even_o god_n himself_o he_o fall_v on_o his_o face_n to_o the_o earth_n and_o do_v worship_n and_o lose_v his_o shoe_n from_o off_o his_o foot_n because_o the_o place_n whereon_o he_o stand_v be_v holy_a thus_o we_o ought_v to_o appear_v before_o god_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a and_o to_o come_v with_o all_o due_a reverence_n into_o his_o presence_n when_o we_o perform_v any_o holy_a duty_n unto_o he_o also_o to_o put_v off_o all_o our_o filthiness_n and_o to_o put_v on_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n because_o we_o come_v into_o a_o holy_a place_n where_o god_n himself_o be_v present_a who_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o unclean_a thing_n to_o come_v near_o unto_o he_o if_o we_o can_v thus_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o shall_v find_v much_o sweetness_n and_o comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n now_o let_v thy_o heart_n meditate_v free_o on_o this_o bless_a comforter_n with_o a_o holy_a devotion_n and_o pure_a affection_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o any_o sorrowful_a or_o afflict_a condition_n or_o when_o any_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n do_v seize_v upon_o thou_o for_o true_a consolation_n be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o only_o in_o he_o let_v thy_o heart_n also_o ruminate_v upon_o those_o several_a resemblance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o will_v help_v thy_o understanding_n to_o discern_v how_o he_o work_v in_o thy_o heart_n to_o purge_v thou_o from_o thy_o corruption_n to_o instruct_v thou_o in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n to_o confirm_v thou_o in_o the_o truth_n to_o change_v thy_o sinful_a disposition_n into_o a_o sanctify_a condition_n to_o seal_v the_o assurance_n of_o thy_o redemption_n to_o thy_o soul_n to_o blow_v away_o all_o vain_a and_o sinful_a cogitation_n out_o of_o thy_o mind_n and_o to_o give_v thou_o all_o spiritual_a ability_n meet_v for_o a_o christian_a warfare_n in_o this_o life_n that_o thou_o may_v have_v a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v how_o to_o meditate_v upon_o the_o work_v of_o god_n if_o we_o consider_v and_o look_v well_o upon_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o earth_n how_o he_o have_v beautify_v and_o adorn_v the_o heaven_n with_o innumerable_a glorious_a body_n and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n with_o all_o variety_n of_o plant_n and_o fruitful_a tree_n and_o with_o all_o kind_n of_o live_a creature_n both_o great_a and_o small_a also_o how_o he_o have_v fill_v the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n with_o rich_a and_o precious_a mineral_n and_o the_o sea_n with_o fish_n of_o all_o kind_n we_o can_v then_o but_o admire_v the_o omnipotent_a power_n the_o infinite_a wisdom_n the_o transcendent_a glory_n and_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n the_o great_a creator_n who_o have_v make_v they_o all_o for_o our_o use_n and_o service_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v by_o they_o this_o consideration_n will_v help_v our_o understanding_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o to_o raise_v up_o our_o heart_n
in_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o 14._o it_o 1._o john_n 4_o 14._o the_o father_n send_v the_o son_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o christ_n himself_o do_v testify_v that_o the_o father_n send_v he_o for_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n 37_o purpose_n john_n 5._o 36_o 37_o for_o the_o work_n say_v he_o which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o to_o finish_v the_o same_o work_n that_o i_o do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v i_o and_o the_o father_n himself_o which_o have_v send_v i_o have_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o for_o a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v say_v ●_o say_v mat._n 3._o ●_o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v the_o son_n also_o assume_v our_o nature_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n 17._o body_n heb._n 2._o 17._o for_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 15_o thing_n heb_fw-mi 4._o 15_o sin_n only_o except_v he_o be_v every_o way_n full_o qualify_v to_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n he_o become_v our_o surety_n and_o he_o pay_v the_o debt_n that_o we_o do_v ●ow_o to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n by_o his_o death_n and_o by_o the_o price_n of_o his_o blood_n the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o rest_v upon_o he_o at_o his_o baptism_n 9_o baptism_n heb._n 1._o 9_o and_o anoint_v he_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o his_o fellow_n 19_o fellow_n col._n 1._o 19_o that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v 16._o dwell_v john_n 1._o 16._o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n god_n have_v make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v convey_v all_o save_a grace_n from_o he_o to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o mystical_a body_n wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v elect_v unto_o salvation_n and_o do_v belong_v unto_o christ_n by_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o work_n sanctify_v grace_n in_o we_o and_o will_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v a_o modest_a and_o sober_a assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o he_o and_o of_o our_o reconcilement_n into_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n why_o then_o do_v we_o not_o seek_v to_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n for_o our_o redemption_n why_o do_v we_o continue_v still_o in_o a_o voluntary_a captivity_n and_o bondage_n whereas_o we_o may_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n why_o be_v we_o still_o exile_v and_o banish_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n whereas_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v again_o into_o his_o favour_n why_o do_v we_o not_o seek_v his_o face_n and_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n see_v all_o true_a felicity_n and_o happiness_n consist_v therein_o 11_o therein_o psa_fw-la 16._o 11_o and_o see_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o and_o why_o be_v we_o so_o backward_o in_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n alas_o we_o have_v not_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o our_o own_o miserable_a slavery_n we_o do_v not_o feel_v the_o burden_n of_o our_o sin_n we_o do_v not_o see_v how_o the_o devil_n do_v tyrannize_v over_o we_o how_o he_o do_v beguile_v we_o with_o a_o seem_a pleasure_n and_o profit_n in_o sin_n for_o he_o will_v not_o let_v we_o see_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o loss_n that_o we_o sustain_v by_o it_o nor_o the_o bitterness_n of_o the_o torment_n that_o will_v follow_v after_o it_o beside_o those_o temporal_a sorrow_n that_o it_o bring_v upon_o we_o in_o this_o life_n thus_o the_o devil_n bring_v we_o into_o security_n and_o into_o a_o dead_a sleep_n of_o sin_n and_o do_v so_o stupefy_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o we_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o our_o spiritual_a misery_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o lead_v we_o into_o a_o dangerous_a way_n that_o tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o the_o perdition_n and_o destruction_n of_o our_o soul_n also_o we_o be_v so_o delight_v with_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n that_o we_o think_v of_o no_o other_o happiness_n than_o what_o we_o do_v now_o enjoy_v or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o heaven_n than_o this_o upon_o earth_n we_o will_v be_v direct_v to_o it_o by_o the_o guidance_n of_o our_o own_o corrupt_a will_n and_o not_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o the_o devil_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o nature_n can_v find_v out_o a_o ready_a and_o a_o easy_a way_n to_o heavenly_a felicity_n than_o by_o christ_n thus_o we_o be_v hinder_v and_o keep_v back_o by_o the_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o allure_a vanity_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n that_o we_o can_v come_v unto_o christ_n for_o our_o redemption_n and_o to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n through_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o to_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o it_o by_o our_o sound_n and_o true_a repentance_n wherefore_o it_o do_v now_o plain_o appear_v that_o we_o have_v no_o power_n or_o ability_n in_o ourselves_o to_o come_v unto_o christ_n we_o must_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n or_o else_o we_o can_v find_v the_o way_n he_o must_v draw_v we_o or_o else_o we_o can_v come_v to_o christ_n for_o thus_o say_v christ_n himself_o 44_o himself_o john_n 6._o 44_o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o i_o except_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o draw_v he_o god_n do_v sometime_o draw_v we_o unto_o christ_n 4_o christ_n hos_fw-la 11._o 4_o as_o he_o draw_v ephraim_n with_o cord_n of_o a_o man_n with_o band_n of_o love_n he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a light_n by_o his_o spirit_n to_o find_v the_o way_n he_o will_v kindle_v a_o holy_a zeal_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o walk_v in_o it_o and_o he_o will_v inflame_v our_o desire_n that_o by_o grace_n we_o may_v come_v to_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n 24_o gal._n 3._o 24_o sometime_o god_n do_v bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o the_o law_n as_o our_o schoolmaster_n with_o a_o rod_n in_o his_o hand_n by_o terrify_v we_o with_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n if_o that_o be_v not_o sufficient_a than_o he_o will_v make_v we_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o his_o rod_n by_o affliction_n cross_n and_o tribulation_n god_n do_v also_o send_v his_o minister_n 20_o minister_n 2_o cor_fw-la 5._o 20_o as_o his_o ambassador_n that_o by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n they_o may_v win_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n christ_n do_v also_o sweet_o draw_v we_o unto_o himself_o as_o the_o head_n draw_v the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n and_o as_o the_o bridegroom_n draw_v his_o spouse_n thus_o say_v the_o spouse_n to_o her_o belove_a 3_o belove_a cant._n 1._o 3_o draw_v i_o we_o will_v run_v after_o thou_o christ_n do_v also_o love_o invite_v we_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o make_v we_o the_o more_o willing_a to_o come_v he_o do_v allure_v we_o by_o his_o gracious_a promise_n 28_o promise_n mat._n 11._o 28_o come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o labour_n and_o be_v heavy_a lade_v and_o i_o will_v give_v you_o rest_n thus_o also_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 3_o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 1_o 2_o 3_o ho_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v come_v you_o to_o the_o water_n and_o he_o that_o have_v no_o money_n come_v you_o buy_v and_o eat_v yea_o come_v buy_v wine_n and_o milk_n without_o money_n and_o without_o price_n harken_v diligent_o unto_o i_o and_o eat_v you_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o let_v your_o soul_n delight_v itself_o in_o fatness_n incline_v your_o ear_n and_o come_v unto_o i_o hear_v and_o your_o soul_n shall_v live_v how_o can_v christ_n express_v his_o love_n more_o free_o to_o a_o poor_a sinful_a soul_n than_o now_o he_o do_v what_o will_v move_v we_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o if_o this_o free_a tender_a of_o grace_n can_v but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v quite_o without_o excuse_n and_o that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n may_v abundant_o appear_v unto_o we_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v likewise_o draw_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o give_v we_o a_o true_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o show_v we_o the_o mean_n how_o we_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n by_o work_a faith_n in_o we_o to_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o by_o work_v we_o into_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o do_v now_o plain_o and_o evident_o appear_v that_o our_o sin_n have_v set_v we_o at_o a_o far_a distance_n from_o god_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o
but_o in_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n christ_n jesus_n the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n lay_v aside_o all_o his_o celestial_a and_o heavenly_a glory_n which_o be_v his_o due_n from_o his_o first_o incarnation_n and_o from_o eternity_n and_o come_v down_o from_o his_o throne_n of_o majesty_n in_o heaven_n and_o humble_v himself_o to_o the_o mean_a condition_n of_o life_n here_o on_o earth_n and_o to_o the_o base_a and_o most_o accurse_a death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o misery_n and_o advance_v we_o to_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o happiness_n even_o above_o the_o bless_a angel_n in_o heaven_n this_o will_v be_v exceed_o great_a joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o we_o if_o we_o have_v a_o holy_a persuasion_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n for_o hereby_o we_o have_v a_o near_a relation_n unto_o god_n be_v make_v his_o son_n by_o adoption_n in_o christ_n and_o then_o our_o soul_n will_v so_o delight_v in_o he_o that_o nothing_o will_v will_n be_v hard_a to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o nothing_o will_v be_v too_o dear_a for_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v require_v and_o it_o will_v be_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o do_v his_o will_n and_o the_o joy_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o be_v join_v near_a and_o close_o unto_o he_o also_o we_o shall_v willing_o part_v with_o our_o dear_a sin_n rather_o than_o our_o sin_n shall_v part_v we_o from_o our_o god_n this_o holy_a persuasion_n if_o it_o be_v well_o ground_v will_v make_v we_o fear_v no_o adversary_n power_n and_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n shall_v not_o daunt_v we_o for_o we_o will_v flee_v unto_o christ_n as_o our_o best_a refuge_n in_o all_o our_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n we_o will_v crave_v his_o protection_n in_o all_o our_o peril_n and_o danger_n for_o he_o be_v our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o saviour_n he_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o who_o we_o must_v trust_v he_o will_v give_v we_o strength_n of_o grace_n to_o endure_v our_o trial_n to_o fight_v his_o battle_n and_o to_o stand_v for_o the_o truth_n against_o all_o opposition_n we_o may_v safe_o rest_v upon_o christ_n and_o put_v our_o confidence_n in_o he_o for_o comfort_n and_o succour_n when_o any_o calamity_n do_v oppress_v we_o for_o help_v and_o deliverance_n when_o any_o spiritual_a enemy_n do_v assault_v we_o for_o he_o will_v be_v our_o hide_v place_n in_o time_n of_o danger_n and_o our_o comfort_n in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n 22._o affliction_n eph._n 1._o 20_o 21_o 22._o for_o god_n have_v set_v he_o at_o his_o own_o right_a hand_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o might_n and_o dominion_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v no●_n only_o in_o this_o world_n but_o also_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o give_v he_o to_o be_v the_o head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n wherefore_o let_v the_o consideration_n of_o all_o these_o benefit_n which_o we_o have_v by_o our_o redemption_n stir_v we_o up_o with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n to_o perform_v that_o duty_n and_o obedience_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o express_v all_o filial_a fear_n and_o reverence_n all_o love_n praise_n and_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o for_o our_o redemption_n which_o work_v neither_o god_n nor_o man_n can_v effect_v for_o we_o but_o only_o christ_n who_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man._n the_o time_n of_o grace_n god_n be_v the_o sole_a disposer_n of_o time_n and_o he_o keep_v that_o precious_a jewel_n in_o his_o own_o cabinet_n to_o give_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n what_o time_n he_o please_v and_o he_o appoint_v every_o one_o to_o improve_v their_o time_n for_o the_o gain_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o do_v conduce_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o not_o to_o spend_v it_o vain_o sinful_o and_o licentious_o to_o some_o he_o give_v more_o time_n and_o to_o some_o less_o and_o all_o must_v employ_v it_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o good_a of_o his_o neighbour_n god_n do_v measure_n out_o our_o life_n by_o time_n and_o some_o have_v a_o long_a measure_n than_o other_o and_o this_o measure_n be_v dispense_v to_o we_o by_o moment_n for_o we_o can_v recall_v the_o time_n that_o be_v past_a and_o we_o do_v not_o enjoy_v the_o time_n that_o be_v to_o come_v so_o that_o we_o have_v only_o the_o time_n that_o be_v now_o present_a which_o be_v but_o a_o moment_n and_o when_o one_o moment_n of_o time_n be_v go_v god_n do_v give_v we_o another_o until_o the_o measure_n of_o time_n that_o god_n have_v allot_v we_o be_v fulfil_v if_o we_o look_v upon_o a_o hourglass_n we_o shall_v see_v how_o swift_o one_o grain_n of_o sand_n run_v after_o another_o and_o so_o continue_v until_o all_o be_v run_v out_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o moment_n of_o our_o life_n one_o moment_n follow_v swift_o after_o another_o which_o god_n will_v have_v we_o due_o to_o consider_v that_o we_o may_v not_o waste_v our_o time_n in_o vain_a thing_n but_o employ_v it_o to_o that_o end_n for_o which_o god_n give_v it_o and_o that_o be_v to_o the_o work_n out_o of_o our_o own_o salvation_n that_o god_n may_v be_v honour_v and_o glorify_v thereby_o and_o therefore_o about_o whatsoever_o we_o spend_v our_o time_n if_o it_o do_v not_o conduce_v to_o that_o end_n it_o be_v but_o lose_v and_o vain_o spend_v god_n have_v give_v we_o a_o time_n for_o all_o our_o necessary_a occasion_n here_o upon_o earth_n that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v in_o their_o season_n for_o as_o the_o preacher_n say_v to_o every_o thing_n there_o be_v a_o season_n and_o a_o time_n to_o every_o purpose_n under_o the_o heaven_n 2._o ●_o eccles_n 3._o 1_o 2._o a_o time_n to_o be_v bear_v and_o a_o time_n to_o die_v a_o time_n to_o plant_v and_o a_o time_n to_o pluck_v up_o that_o which_o be_v plant_v and_o we_o do_v observe_v the_o time_n and_o season_n of_o the_o year_n when_o to_o till_o the_o ground_n and_o when_o to_o sow_v our_o seed_n when_o to_o reap_v our_o harvest_n and_o when_o to_o gather_v in_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o celestial_a body_n know_v their_o time_n as_o the_o psalmist_n sait●_n 19_o sait●_n psal_n 164_o 19_o he_o appoint_v the_o moon_n for_o season_n the_o sun_n know_v his_o go_v down_o also_o the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o bird_n in_o the_o air_n have_v their_o time_n appoint_v for_o thus_o god_n upbraid_v his_o own_o people_n by_o his_o prophet_n 7._o prophet_n jer._n 8._o 7._o the_o stork_n in_o the_o heaven_n know_v her_o appoint_a time_n and_o the_o turtle_n and_o the_o crane_n and_o the_o swallow_n observe_v the_o time_n of_o their_o come_n but_o my_o people_n know_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v wise_a enough_o to_o know_v our_o time_n for_o earthly_a thing_n but_o we_o have_v no_o care_n to_o observe_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n how_o and_o when_o we_o may_v gain_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v accept_v of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o holy_a oblation_n that_o we_o offer_v unto_o he_o and_o also_o when_o we_o may_v obtain_v from_o he_o the_o save_n and_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o most_o bless_a spirit_n the_o time_n of_o our_o life_n be_v the_o general_a and_o long_a time_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o wherein_o we_o shall_v seek_v his_o gracious_a acceptance_n of_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o wherein_o he_o do_v work_v grace_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o elect_n by_o his_o spirit_n now_o if_o we_o measure_v this_o time_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o length_n of_o our_o day_n accord_v to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n or_o according_a to_o the_o health_n and_o strength_n of_o our_o body_n or_o by_o our_o own_o foolish_a fancy_n that_o measure_n be_v very_o uncertain_a for_o who_o know_v whether_o his_o day_n shall_v be_v many_o or_o few_o be_v we_o not_o daily_a subject_n to_o casualty_n and_o to_o sudden_a death_n if_o we_o be_v strong_a and_o have_v our_o health_n to_o day_n we_o may_v be_v weak_a and_o sick_a to_o morrow_n though_o we_o dream_v of_o long_a life_n yet_o it_o be_v but_o a_o dream_n for_o we_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o it_o if_o we_o thus_o measure_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n we_o shall_v put_v it_o off_o with_o delay_n until_o god_n do_v sudden_o bereave_v we_o of_o all_o time_n but_o we_o must_v measure_v out_o our_o day_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o then_o we_o
shall_v see_v 9_o see_v gen._n 47_o 9_o that_o our_o day_n be_v few_o and_o evil_a as_o jacob_n say_v unto_o pharaoh_n and_o holy_a david_n will_v tell_v we_o 4._o we_o psa_fw-la 144._o 4._o that_o man_n be_v like_a to_o vanity_n his_o day_n be_v as_o a_o shadow_n that_o pass_v away_o also_o 5._o also_o psal_n 39_o 5._o that_o our_o day_n be_v as_o a_o hand-breadth_n and_o our_o age_n be_v as_o nothing_o before_o god_n and_o in_o another_o psalm_n he_o say_v thus_o 16._o thus_o psal_n 103._o 15_o 16._o as_o for_o man_n his_o day_n be_v as_o grass_n as_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n so_o he_o flowrish_v for_o the_o wind_n pass_v over_o it_o and_o it_o be_v go_v and_o the_o place_n thereof_o shall_v know_v it_o no_o more_o thus_o say_v holy_a job_n 7_o job_n job_n 7._o 6._o 7_o my_o day_n be_v swift_a than_o a_o weaver_n shuttle_n and_o be_v spend_v without_o hope_n o_o remember_v that_o my_o life_n be_v wind_n if_o our_o life_n be_v wind_n how_o soon_o then_o be_v it_o go_v how_o little_a then_o be_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n and_o yet_o upon_o this_o little_a moment_n depend_v our_o eternal_a happiness_n for_o when_o this_o life_n be_v end_v there_o be_v no_o more_o time_n for_o grace_n or_o to_o seek_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v extreme_a folly_n to_o lose_v any_o part_n of_o this_o precious_a time_n without_o some_o gain_n of_o grace_n or_o to_o spend_v it_o to_o any_o other_o end_n than_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n then_o much_o more_o to_o waste_v it_o in_o sinful_a pleasure_n to_o the_o great_a dishonour_n of_o his_o name_n and_o to_o the_o destruction_n and_o loss_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n yet_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o frailty_n of_o our_o unregenerate_a part_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o many_o slip_n and_o fail_n and_o sometime_o we_o do_v so_o dangerous_o fall_v that_o god_n will_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o we_o and_o eclipse_v the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o gracious_a countenance_n for_o a_o time_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o sense_n nor_o apprehension_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n to_o we_o and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o spirit_n will_v seem_v to_o we_o to_o be_v wither_v and_o dry_v up_o but_o god_n have_v his_o special_a time_n of_o grace_n when_o he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o we_o and_o when_o he_o will_v gracious_o accept_v we_o and_o will_v manifest_v again_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n shall_v again_o shine_v forth_o in_o we_o when_o god_n have_v wrought_v his_o own_o work_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o have_v humble_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n with_o his_o rod_n he_o will_v then_o call_v to_o we_o say_v 8._o say_v psal_n 27._o 8._o seek_v you_o my_o face_n and_o our_o heart_n must_v present_o answer_v with_o david_n thy_o face_n lord_n will_v we_o seek_v for_o to_o answer_v present_o to_o god_n call_v be_v the_o time_n of_o gracious_a acceptation_n thus_o say_v david_n i_o acknowledge_v my_o sin_n unto_o thou_o and_o my_o iniquity_n have_v i_o not_o hide_v i_o say_v 6._o k_o ps_n 32._o 5_o 6._o i_o will_v confess_v my_o transgression_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o forgave_v the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o sin_n for_o this_o shall_v every_o one_o that_o be_v godly_a prey_n unto_o thou_o in_o a_o time_n when_o thou_o may_v be_v find_v also_o when_o we_o seek_v with_o all_o faithful_a diligence_n unto_o the_o lord_n in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o sue_v unto_o he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v find_v he_o gracious_a and_o propitious_a to_o we_o as_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 14._o prophet_n jer._n 29._o 12_o 13_o 14._o then_o shall_v you_o call_v upon_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v go_v and_o pray_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o will_v hearken_v unto_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o find_v i_o when_o you_o shall_v search_v for_o i_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o i_o will_v be_v find_v of_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v down_o a_o more_o particular_a time_n of_o grace_n 13._o grace_n heb._n 3._o 7_o 13._o to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n harden_v not_o ●our_n heart_n and_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n lest_o any_o of_o you_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n for_o god_n do_v call_v to_o we_o every_o day_n by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o to_o seek_v his_o face_n and_o his_o favour_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o put_v off_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n until_o the_o morrow_n for_o as_o james_n say_v 14_o say_v jam._n 4._o 14_o w●_n know_v not_o what_o shall_v be_v on_o th●_n morrow_n for_o what_o be_v our_o life_n it_o be_v even_o a_o vapour_n that_o appear_v for_o a_o little_a time_n and_o then_o vanish_v away_o it_o be_v now_o plain_a and_o evident_a that_o the_o principal_a time_n of_o grace_n be_v when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o offer_v it_o and_o when_o he_o do_v give_v we_o the_o mean_n to_o attain_v unto_o it_o for_o god_n keep_v the_o gift_n of_o grace_n in_o his_o own_o power_n to_o give_v it_o to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o please_v and_o except_o god_n do_v offer_v it_o we_o can_v receive_v it_o the_o very_a first_o desire_n of_o seek_v grace_n be_v god_n free_a offer_n of_o it_o to_o we_o for_o he_o do_v incline_v the_o will_n and_o work_v those_o holy_a desire_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n sometime_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v work_v they_o in_o we_o upon_o the_o true_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o thereby_o move_v we_o to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o true_a repentance_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 7_o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 6_o 7_o seek_v you_o the_o lord_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v call_v you_o upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o let_v the_o wicked_a forsake_v his_o way_n and_o the_o unrighteous_a man_n his_o thought_n and_o let_v he_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v also_o work_v thus_o in_o our_o heart_n upon_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n and_o upon_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n to_o humble_v our_o soul_n before_o god_n that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v prepare_v to_o seek_v his_o love_n and_o favour_n by_o fervent_a prayer_n thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 16._o prophet_n isa_n 26._o 16._o lord_n in_o trouble_n have_v they_o visit_v thou_o they_o pour_v out_o a_o prayer_n when_o thy_o chasten_n be_v upon_o they_o if_o we_o do_v due_o consider_v these_o thiog_n and_o ponder_v well_o upon_o they_o in_o our_o heart_n it_o will_v teach_v we_o high_o to_o prize_v that_o time_n which_o god_n do_v lend_v we_o here_o in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o gain_n of_o grace_n that_o hereafter_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o eternal_a happiness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o not_o to_o refuse_v any_o offer_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n shall_v make_v unto_o we_o first_o because_o o●r_v time_n be_v short_a and_o momentany_a and_o we_o know_v not_o how_o long_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o second_o because_o our_o little_a time_n be_v transitory_a and_o pass_v swift_o away_o and_o we_o can_v recall_v one_o moment_n that_o be_v go_v three_o because_o it_o be_v the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o grace_n and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o gracious_a acceptation_n four_o because_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n both_o of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n depend_v upon_o this_o short_a time_n of_o our_o life_n last_o if_o we_o lose_v any_o opportunity_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n do_v give_v we_o we_o show_v great_a unthankfulness_n to_o god_n and_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o will_v give_v we_o another_o opportunity_n for_o it_o wherefore_o we_o shall_v not_o spend_v our_o time_n idle_o or_o unprofitable_o but_o we_o must_v with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n improve_v it_o to_o those_o end_n for_o which_o god_n have_v give_v it_o to_o make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n who_o we_o have_v offend_v and_o to_o regain_v his_o love_n and_o favour_n when_o we_o have_v lose_v the_o apprehension_n of_o it_o by_o our_o sin_n many_o heavenly_a comfort_n we_o shall_v find_v if_o we_o listen_v to_o god_n call_v and_o receive_v grace_n when_o he_o do_v offer_v it_o first_o god_n will_v be_v find_v of_o we_o if_o we_o seek_v he_o with_o pure_a affection_n and_o in_o the_o uprightness_n of_o our_o heart_n second_o he_o
will_v hear_v our_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n if_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o want_n of_o what_o we_o pray_v for_o three_o he_o will_v succour_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o distress_n if_o we_o cry_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o true_a apprehension_n of_o our_o own_o misery_n last_o such_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v incline_v our_o will_n and_o put_v holy_a desire_n into_o our_o heart_n to_o seek_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n when_o we_o be_v prepare_v for_o it_o by_o true_a humiliation_n and_o sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n for_o than_o he_o will_v hear_v our_o prayer_n he_o will_v grant_v our_o request_n and_o will_v gracious_o accept_v we_o though_o our_o sin_n have_v former_o move_v he_o to_o hide_v himself_o from_o we_o consider_v further_o that_o the_o principal_a mean_n of_o grace_n be_v by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n by_o who_o righteousness_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o who_o grace_n we_o be_v sanctify_v and_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o who_o blood_n we_o be_v save_v so_o that_o without_o christ_n we_o can_v neither_o come_v into_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n neither_o can_v any_o sanctify_a and_o save_v grace_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o to_o make_v we_o capable_a of_o salvation_n now_o god_n have_v appoint_v the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o his_o word_n to_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o reveal_v christ_n perfect_o and_o full_o to_o we_o and_o to_o work_v faith_n in_o we_o whereby_o we_o be_v knit_v and_o unite_v unto_o christ_n from_o who_o all_o other_o sanctify_v and_o heavenly_a grace_n do_v plentiful_o flow_v and_o they_o be_v convey_v to_o we_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n ●7_n apostle_n rom._n 10._o ●7_n faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o it_o bring_v in_o with_o it_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o it_o whatsoever_o be_v needful_a to_o salvation_n and_o there_o be_v no_o grace_n but_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o it_o by_o this_o mean_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v accompany_v the_o administration_n of_o it_o to_o bring_v it_o close_o to_o our_o heart_n god_n have_v also_o other_o mean_n which_o he_o use_v for_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o and_o to_o bring_v we_o home_n when_o we_o go_v astray_o from_o he_o for_o every_o blessing_n that_o we_o receive_v every_o affliction_n that_o he_o send_v and_o every_o motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o feel_v be_v a_o call_n from_o god_n and_o a_o mean_n that_o conduce_v to_o the_o gain_n of_o some_o grace_n or_o other_o his_o blessing_n shall_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o glorify_v god_n with_o our_o praise_n and_o thankfulness_n 4._o thankfulness_n rom._n 2._o 4._o his_o goodness_n shall_v lead_v we_o to_o repentance_n and_o his_o love_n to_o we_o shall_v bind_v we_o to_o love_v he_o again_o also_o the_o sorrow_n and_o misery_n that_o we_o suffer_v in_o this_o life_n shall_v teach_v we_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o patience_n under_o the_o cross_n they_o shall_v humble_v we_o and_o bring_v we_o to_o true_a repentance_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n so_o likewise_o every_o motion_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n shall_v move_v we_o to_o obedience_n and_o to_o conformity_n of_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o daily_a experience_n we_o have_v of_o god_n care_n over_o we_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o confide_v in_o god_n and_o to_o rest_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n whatsoever_o these_o and_o the_o like_a mean_n god_n do_v use_v to_o quicken_v up_o those_o grace_n that_o lie_v languish_v in_o we_o and_o be_v as_o dead_a to_o our_o apprehension_n and_o also_o to_o make_v we_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o support_v we_o in_o all_o our_o trial_n and_o distress_n these_o heavenly_a motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n still_a voice_n which_o shall_v make_v deep_a impression_n in_o our_o heart_n because_o he_o do_v thereby_o immediate_o from_o himself_o reveal_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n to_o we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v to_o which_o holy_a inspiration_n we_o ought_v to_o yield_v our_o willing_a obedience_n though_o it_o be_v irksome_a to_o our_o nature_n and_o cross_v the_o unregenerate_a part_n of_o our_o will_n as_o to_o repent_v and_o to_o leave_v a_o darling_n sin_n which_o we_o have_v long_o nourish_v in_o our_o bosom_n this_o be_v a_o time_n when_o we_o may_v gain_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o listen_v to_o this_o voice_n and_o cheerful_o to_o obey_v it_o wherefore_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v our_o care_n to_o embrace_v any_o mean_n or_o opportunity_n that_o god_n shall_v tender_v to_o we_o for_o grace_n because_o it_o be_v god_n time_n of_o grace_n and_o he_o will_v second_v his_o own_o time_n and_o his_o own_o mean_n with_o a_o blessing_n if_o we_o embrace_v it_o but_o if_o we_o will_v be_v feast_v when_o we_o shall_v fast_o and_o pray_v or_o rejoice_v when_o we_o shall_v mourn_v and_o weep_v we_o do_v then_o discover_v too_o much_o disobedience_n and_o rebellion_n against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n now_o we_o ought_v to_o examine_v ourselves_o how_o we_o have_v profit_v under_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n how_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v wrought_v upon_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n what_o heavenly_a grace_n have_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o it_o or_o by_o any_o of_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n and_o what_o spiritual_a comfort_n we_o have_v find_v by_o they_o also_o we_o ought_v to_o examine_v what_o thankfulness_n we_o have_v return_v to_o god_n for_o his_o blessing_n what_o sorrow_n of_o heart_n we_o have_v have_v for_o our_o sin_n how_o we_o have_v be_v humble_v under_o the_o cross_n what_o reformation_n of_o life_n grace_n have_v wrought_v in_o we_o how_o we_o have_v obey_v the_o holy_a motion_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o how_o we_o have_v be_v ravish_v in_o soul_n with_o earnest_a desire_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n if_o we_o have_v live_v long_o under_o a_o powerful_a ministry_n and_o yet_o have_v gain_v little_a or_o no_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o no_o faith_n or_o save_a grace_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o power_n of_o it_o we_o have_v then_o lose_v so_o much_o time_n of_o grace_n and_o we_o have_v not_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o best_a advantage_n nor_o to_o the_o right_a end_n as_o god_n have_v appoint_v which_o be_v to_o gain_v grace_n for_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o let_v these_o be_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n how_o to_o improve_v the_o time_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o right_a end_n that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v good_a steward_n and_o profitable_a servant_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o master_n jesus_n christ_n by_o that_o gain_n which_o we_o shall_v make_v of_o grace_n in_o this_o little_a stock_n of_o time_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o more_o time_n and_o the_o more_o mean_n of_o grace_n we_o do_v enjoy_v the_o more_o fruit_n of_o grace_n we_o must_v bring_v forth_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v be_v unprofitable_a servant_n if_o we_o improve_v our_o time_n for_o grace_n as_o we_o ought_v we_o shall_v gain_v the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n our_o heart_n will_v be_v season_v with_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o our_o conversation_n will_v be_v in_o heaven_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n for_o we_o shall_v live_v a_o gracious_a and_o a_o comfortable_a life_n now_o and_o a_o glorious_a and_o bless_a life_n hereafter_o also_o let_v this_o be_v the_o true_a desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o redeem_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o have_v lose_v and_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o more_o profit_n that_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o may_v appear_v in_o our_o obedience_n to_o god_n commandment_n in_o our_o zeal_n to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n and_o in_o our_o care_n to_o walk_v in_o all_o piety_n and_o virtue_n which_o we_o may_v the_o better_a do_v if_o we_o daily_o address_v ourselves_o to_o god_n by_o faithful_a prayer_n for_o the_o gracious_a assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n herein_o in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o though_o god_n do_v give_v we_o time_n and_o mean_n for_o grace_n yet_o we_o can_v attain_v unto_o it_o without_o the_o special_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o for_o he_o must_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n he_o must_v open_v our_o heart_n and_o
from_o the_o lord_n own_o mouth_n that_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o a_o good_a shepherd_n 4_o shepherd_n ezec._n 34._o 3_o 4_o to_o feed_v the_o flock_n to_o strengthen_v the_o disease_a to_o heal_v the_o sick_a to_o bind_v up_o that_o which_o be_v break_v to_o bring_v again_o that_o which_o be_v drive_v away_o to_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o to_o protect_v his_o flock_n from_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o wolf_n isaiah_n do_v prophesy_v thus_o of_o christ_n 11_o christ_n isa_n 40._o 11_o he_o shall_v feed_v his_o flock_n like_o a_o shepherd_n he_o shall_v grather_o the_o lamb_n with_o his_o arm_n and_o carry_v they_o in_o his_o bosom_n and_o shall_v gentle_o lead_v those_o that_o be_v with_o young_a this_o tender_a care_n christ_n have_v over_o every_o lamb_n and_o every_o sheep_n that_o belong_v to_o his_o fold_n if_o we_o be_v then_o his_o sheep_n 4._o sheep_n joh._n 10._o 3_o 4._o we_o know_v his_o voice_n we_o will_v hear_v it_o we_o will_v follow_v he_o and_o obey_v his_o voice_n thus_o say_v david_n 23._o david_n i●sal_n 23._o the_o lord_n be_v my_o shepherd_n i_o shall_v not_o want_v if_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o shepherd_n then_o sure_o our_o shepherd_n be_v the_o lord_n jehovah_n under_o who_o shadow_n we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v and_o from_o who_o we_o shall_v receive_v all_o sweet_a consolation_n and_o refresh_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n 23_o prophet_n eze._n 34._o 23_o and_o i_o will_v set_v up_o one_o shepherd_n over_o they_o and_o he_o shall_v feed_v they_o even_o my_o servant_n david_n which_o be_v christ_n the_o lord_n four_o christ_n be_v resemble_v 2._o resemble_v rev._n 2_o 2._o 2._o to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o do_v bear_v twelve_o manner_n of_o fruit_n and_o yield_v her_o fruit_n every_o month_n and_o the_o leaf_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o nation_n now_o then_o 3._o then_o cant._n 2._o 3._o if_o we_o sit_v down_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o tree_n we_o shall_v find_v great_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o the_o heat_n of_o god_n wrath_n we_o shall_v be_v refresh_v thereby_o in_o the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o affliction_n and_o fiery_a trial_n and_o under_o this_o shadow_n the_o burn_a heat_n of_o our_o sinful_a lust_n will_v be_v cool_v and_o assuage_v if_o we_o feed_v upon_o the_o fruit_n of_o this_o tree_n by_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n crucify_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o his_o blood_n pour_v out_o it_o will_v be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a to_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n 5●_n taste_n john_n 6._o 5●_n for_o it_o will_v ●e_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n to_o make_v we_o live_v for_o ever_o 14._o ever_o joh._n 4._o 14._o and_o his_o blood_n will_v be_v a_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n which_o will_v spring_v up_o in_o we_o unto_o everlasting_a life_n the_o leaf_n of_o this_o tree_n be_v his_o gracious_a promise_n which_o will_v heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o wound_n that_o our_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n if_o we_o do_v apply_v they_o to_o every_o particular_a wound_n by_o faith_n last_o christ_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o bridegroom_n and_o then_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n and_o every_o true_a believer_n be_v his_o spouse_n and_o his_o bride_n that_o be_v that_o which_o john_n the_o baptist_n say_v 29_o say_v john_n 3._o 29_o he_o that_o have_v the_o bride_n be_v the_o bridegroom_n which_o he_o then_o speak_v of_o christ_n now_o there_o be_v a_o wonderful_a joy_n and_o rejoice_n between_o the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o bride_n and_o the_o prophet_n express_v god_n rejoice_v over_o his_o people_n by_o this_o mutual_a joy_n that_o be_v between_o they_o 5_o they_o isa_n 62._o 5_o as_o the_o bridegroom_n rejoice_v over_o the_o bride_n so_o shall_v thy_o god_n rejoice_v over_o thou_o who_o can_v describe_v the_o perfect_a love_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o his_o spouse_n who_o can_v declare_v the_o love_a affection_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n towards_o his_o bride_n what_o excellent_a benefit_n do_v he_o bestow_v upon_o she_o of_o his_o own_o bounty_n and_o grace_n without_o any_o of_o her_o deserve_n though_o she_o have_v many_o spot_n &_o blemish_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v she_o but_o will_v sanctify_v she_o and_o make_v her_o holy_a chaste_a and_o pure_a fit_a to_o be_v his_o spouse_n be_v adorn_v with_o his_o own_o ornament_n of_o grace_n this_o do_v evident_o appear_v in_o that_o excellent_a song_n of_o solomon_n where_o the_o admirable_a love_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o spouse_n be_v express_v and_o also_o the_o entire_a affection_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o he_o this_o be_v christ_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n and_o these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o heavenly_a comfort_n that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v by_o he_o if_o we_o can_v embrace_v he_o by_o faith_n as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o bridegroom_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o may_v now_o draw_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n from_o these_o several_a resemblance_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o our_o weak_a faith_n and_o for_o the_o support_v of_o our_o droop_a spirit_n also_o they_o will_v afford_v we_o excellent_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n to_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o towards_o he_o and_o where_o to_o find_v true_a comfort_n in_o time_n of_o need_n if_o we_o be_v branch_n of_o this_o vine_n we_o shall_v draw_v grace_n and_o virtue_n from_o he_o to_o make_v we_o fruitful_a in_o all_o good_a work_n to_o walk_v upright_o before_o god_n and_o to_o live_v comfortable_a in_o what_o estate_n or_o condition_n soever_o we_o be_v if_o christ_n be_v our_o head_n we_o will_v be_v direct_v by_o he_o in_o all_o our_o way_n we_o will_v seek_v unto_o he_o for_o protection_n against_o all_o our_o enemy_n for_o preservation_n from_o all_o casualty_n and_o danger_n and_o for_o deliverance_n out_o of_o all_o our_o trouble_n also_o that_o we_o may_v receive_v from_o he_o some_o influence_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n without_o which_o we_o can_v move_v one_o step_n towards_o heaven_n if_o christ_n be_v our_o shepherd_n than_o we_o must_v be_v harmless_a and_o meek_a as_o his_o lamb_n our_o ear_n must_v be_v open_a to_o his_o voice_n we_o must_v follow_v he_o and_o none_o but_o he_o 3_o he_o psa_fw-la 2._o 2._o 3_o for_o he_o will_v make_v we_o to_o lie_v down_o in_o green_a pasture_n he_o will_v lead_v we_o forth_o beside_o the_o water_n of_o comfort_n and_o will_v bring_v we_o forth_o in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n and_o will_v also_o plentiful_o provide_v for_o we_o though_o his_o rod_n of_o correction_n or_o his_o staff_n be_v upon_o we_o yet_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o our_o great_a benefit_n and_o consolation_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o can_v shroud_v ourselves_o by_o faith_n under_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o tree_n of_o life_n it_o will_v great_o refresh_v our_o soul_n and_o we_o may_v find_v cure_n for_o all_o our_o spiritual_a disease_n by_o apply_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n suffering_n to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n but_o above_o all_o if_o we_o can_v feed_v upon_o the_o bless_a fruit_n of_o this_o tree_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v in_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o in_o our_o devout_a and_o zealous_a meditation_n on_o christ_n crucify_v for_o we_o it_o will_v nourish_v we_o up_o to_o eternal_a life_n last_o if_o we_o be_v betroth_v unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n he_o will_v then_o rejoice_v over_o we_o to_o do_v we_o good_a he_o will_v make_v we_o pure_a and_o holy_a and_o will_v hide_v all_o our_o deformity_n of_o sin_n under_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n out_o of_o god_n sight_n and_o will_v adorn_v we_o with_o his_o own_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n that_o we_o may_v be_v lovely_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o fit_a to_o be_v wed_v unto_o he_o for_o ever_o hereafter_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o be_v also_o bind_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o our_o union_n to_o love_n christ_n with_o pure_a affection_n to_o honour_v he_o above_o all_o and_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o from_o spiritual_a fornication_n tha●_n the_o may_v delight_v in_o we_o to_o do_v we_o good_a and_o never_o to_o leave_v and_o forsake_v we_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v well_o worthy_a our_o serious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n because_o hereby_o we_o shall_v the_o better_a know_v christ_n our_o redeemer_n and_o we_o shall_v draw_v near_o into_o communion_n with_o he_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o the_o only_a meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n by_o that_o redemption_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v for_o we_o this_o knowledge_n of_o
christ_n be_v above_o all_o humane_a wisdom_n and_o therefore_o 2._o therefore_o 1_o cor._n 2._o 1_o 2._o paul_n come_v not_o to_o the_o corinthian_n with_o excellency_n of_o speech_n or_o of_o wisdom_n to_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n for_o he_o determine_v not_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o they_o save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v gain_v this_o heavenly_a knowledge_n by_o our_o study_n and_o meditation_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v enough_o to_o make_v our_o soul_n gracious_a here_o and_o eternal_o bless_v hereafter_o of_o christ_n prophetical_a office_n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o several_a office_n of_o christ_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v draw_v some_o profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o for_o our_o comfort_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n god_n ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n according_a as_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n 18._o moses_n deut._n 18._o 18._o i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n like_v unto_o thou_o and_o will_v put_v my_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o i_o shall_v command_v he_o this_o be_v that_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n who_o have_v not_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n by_o divine_a revelation_n as_o all_o the_o prophet_n have_v but_o it_o be_v inherent_a in_o he_o and_o he_o have_v it_o from_o his_o own_o divine_a nature_n and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o christ_n give_v some_o manifestation_n of_o this_o his_o office_n by_o way_n of_o pprophecy_n 21._o pprophecy_n luc._n 21._o for_o he_o foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n 44._o temple_n luke_n 19_o 43_o 44._o the_o great_a desolation_n that_o shall_v short_o come_v upon_o jerusalem_n 25_o jerusalem_n lu._n 21._o 25_o and_o also_o the_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n likewise_o he_o foretell_v 19_o foretell_v mat._n 20._o 18_o 19_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o himself_o in_o his_o passion_n 34_o passion_n mat._n 26._o 34_o and_o how_o shameful_o peter_n shall_v deny_v he_o and_o not_o a_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n can_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o must_v be_v fulfil_v in_o due_a time_n because_o 5_o because_o joh._n 14._o 5_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n do_v speak_v it_o he_o 25._o he_o joh._n 2._o 24_o 25._o do_v know_v the_o secret_n of_o every_o man_n heart_n he_o know_v who_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o who_o do_v not_o and_o also_o what_o mischief_n his_o enemy_n intend_v against_o he_o for_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o christ_n have_v give_v some_o glimpse_n of_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n to_o his_o minister_n to_o foresee_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o will_v fall_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o people_n if_o they_o be_v above_o measure_n sinful_a and_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v nor_o bring_v to_o repentance_n but_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o preach_n have_v now_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n ordinary_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o every_o word_n which_o christ_n have_v speak_v must_v be_v fulfil_v how_o ought_v we_o to_o fear_n and_o tremble_v at_o his_o threaten_n how_o careful_a shall_v we_o be_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o he_o by_o sound_a repentance_n and_o turn_n unto_o god_n before_o he_o put_v in_o execution_n what_o he_o have_v threaten_v also_o how_o comfortable_a be_v his_o promise_n which_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v be_v perform_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n how_o can_v any_o affliction_n or_o sorrow_n tire_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o a_o promise_n of_o succour_n from_o christ_n and_o how_o can_v we_o despair_v of_o our_o salvation_n if_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o christ_n have_v perfect_o wrought_v our_o redemption_n and_o have_v make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n his_o father_n also_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n do_v see_v by_o his_o divine_a nature_n into_o the_o secret_n of_o all_o heart_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v vigilant_a and_o careful_a to_o keep_v our_o heart_n cleanse_v and_o purify_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o daily_a renew_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o no_o darling_n sin_n may_v be_v cherish_v there_o for_o he_o can_v see_v it_o and_o find_v it_o out_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a end_n that_o christ_n do_v intend_v in_o this_o his_o office_n for_o he_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o his_o baptism_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n according_a to_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o he_o 18._o he_o isa_n 61._o luc._n 4._o 18._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v i_o to_o preach_v good_a tiding_n unto_o the_o meek_a he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o bind_v up_o the_o break_a heart_a to_o proclaim_v liberty_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o the_o open_n of_o the_o prison_n to_o they_o that_o be_v bind_v to_o proclaim_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n christ_n do_v execute_v the_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o ministry_n and_o 29._o and_o mat._n 7._o 28_o 29._o the_o people_n be_v astonish_v at_o his_o doctrine_n for_o 32_o for_o luc._n 4._o 32_o his_o word_n be_v with_o power_n and_o he_o teach_v they_o as_o one_o have_v authority_n his_o whole_a doctrine_n be_v pure_a and_o divine_a it_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n will_n and_o to_o the_o regulate_v of_o our_o sinful_a life_n according_a to_o god_n commandment_n which_o he_o comprehend_v in_o this_o short_a sum_n 39_o sum_n mat._n 22_o 37._o 39_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o l●rd_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o christ_n do_v right_o interpret_v the_o moral_a law_n and_o free_v it_o from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o the_o pharisee_n for_o whereas_o that_o command_v only_o external_a obedience_n to_o the_o commandment_n according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n of_o they_o as_o not_o to_o kill_v not_o to_o commit_v actual_a adultery_n and_o the_o like_a 5._o like_a mat._n 5._o his_o doctrine_n add_v internal_a observation_n as_o not_o to_o speak_v angry_a word_n to_o our_o neighbour_n hurt_n not_o to_o lust_n and_o the_o like_a and_o whereas_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n command_v to_o offer_v up_o a_o sheep_n or_o a_o ox_n for_o our_o sin_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n do_v instruct_v we_o to_o offer_v up_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o to_o purpose_n and_o resolve_v the_o reformation_n of_o our_o sinful_a life_n christ_n doctrine_n tend_v whole_o to_o the_o perfect_a service_n of_o god_n to_o draw_v our_o mind_n from_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o set_v our_o affection_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o depression_n of_o our_o spiritual_a pride_n to_o the_o mortification_n of_o our_o sinful_a appetite_n and_o to_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o our_o heavenly_a cogitation_n to_o peace_n of_o conscience_n tranquillity_n of_o mind_n purity_n of_o body_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o brief_a his_o doctrine_n do_v contain_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o he_o do_v reveal_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a so_o his_o whole_a life_n and_o conversation_n be_v exact_o suitable_a thereunto_o for_o it_o be_v most_o upright_o and_o holy_a and_o a_o lively_a table_n wherein_o be_v express_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o doctrine_n this_o may_v teach_v all_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n to_o frame_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o their_o good_a example_n may_v confirm_v their_o doctrine_n and_o be_v a_o pattern_n for_o other_o to_o follow_v christ_n do_v still_o execute_v this_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o his_o minister_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n and_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v also_o join_v with_o their_o continual_a preach_n to_o make_v it_o powerful_a for_o edification_n and_o instruction_n and_o effectual_a to_o salvation_n wherefore_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n must_v be_v sanctify_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n and_o our_o ear_n must_v be_v spiritual_o bore_v when_o we_o come_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o we_o must_v faithful_o pray_v that_o his_o spirit_n will_v accompany_v the_o
conceive_v no_o hope_n of_o forgiuness_n without_o christ_n for_o christ_n only_o must_v procure_v our_o pardon_n and_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n of_o christ_n kingly_a office_n god_n do_v likewise_o ordain_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o king_n according_a as_o he_o speak_v by_o david_n ●_o david_n ps_n 2._o 6_o ●_o i_o have_v set_v my_o king_n upon_o my_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o the_o angel_n also_o that_o be_v send_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n tell_v she_o 33._o she_o luc._n 1._o 31_o 32_o 33._o that_o she_o shall_v conceive_v in_o her_o womb_n and_o bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n who_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v over_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n but_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n upon_o earth_n but_o to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a king_n to_o over-rule_v and_o subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o rule_v and_o reign_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o elect_a by_o his_o spirit_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v of_o pilate_n 36_o pilate_n joh._n 28._o 36_o my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v show_v some_o apparent_a sign_n of_o his_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n 27._o earth_n mar._n 8._o 27._o for_o he_o still_v the_o boisterous_a wind_n and_o rage_a sea_n by_o his_o command_n 5._o command_n mar._n 5._o he_o cast_v out_o devil_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n 6._o authority_n mat._n 28._o 6._o he_o triumph_v victorious_o over_o death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a 8._o dead_a act._n 1._o 8._o and_o by_o his_o glorious_a ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n christ_n be_v a_o king_n from_o eternity_n 18._o eternity_n col._n ●_o 18._o and_o god_n make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n at_o his_o ascension_n in_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v our_o mediator_n god_n and_o man_n to_o preserve_v and_o defend_v it_o from_o all_o adversary_n power_n and_o to_o rule_v and_o govern_v it_o by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n in_o righteousness_n and_o in_o truth_n thus_o do_v christ_n still_o execute_v his_o kingly_a office_n by_o set_v up_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o restrain_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o by_o give_v we_o a_o gracious_a ability_n to_o stand_v against_o all_o his_o temptation_n and_o wicked_a suggestion_n also_o christ_n by_o his_o regal_a power_n in_o we_o do_v weaken_v and_o beat_v down_o the_o power_n of_o all_o our_o sinful_a lust_n and_o evil_a concupiscence_n and_o of_o whatsoever_o rebell_v against_o his_o spirit_n and_o he_o bow_v our_o will_n by_o the_o powerful_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o yield_v he_o ready_a obedience_n as_o our_o king_n and_o governor_n and_o so_o to_o prepare_v we_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o at_o length_n he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o his_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o glory_n christ_n be_v 23_o be_v eze._n 7._o 22_o 23_o that_o high_a branch_n of_o that_o cedar_n speak_v of_o by_o the_o prophet_n who_o come_v of_o that_o holy_a line_n by_o succession_n from_o adam_n to_o abraham_n and_o so_o to_o david_n and_o then_o to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o that_o tree_n but_o without_o sin_n he_o do_v god_n crop_v off_o by_o his_o death_n and_o do_v plant_v it_o again_o at_o his_o ascension_n upon_o a_o high_a mountain_n and_o eminent_a when_o he_o make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n which_o become_v a_o goodly_a cedar_n by_o the_o promulgation_n of_o his_o gospel_n under_o who_o bough_n every_o true_a believer_n shall_v have_v protection_n from_o danger_n comfort_n in_o their_o tribulation_n and_o refreshment_n for_o their_o deject_a spirit_n and_o sorrowful_a soul_n none_o be_v exempt_v from_o christ_n but_o all_o fowl_n of_o every_o wing_n both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n shall_v dwell_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o branch_n of_o this_o cedar_n they_o shall_v be_v comfort_v and_o protect_v 7._o protect_v 1_o king_n 19_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o as_o elijah_n be_v from_o the_o rage_n and_o fury_n of_o jezebell_n when_o he_o sit_v under_o the_o juniper_n tree_n they_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o eminent_a danger_n 4._o danger_n judg._n 4._o as_o deborah_n be_v from_o siseraes_n great_a host_n 22_o host_n dan._n 6._o 22_o and_o as_o daniel_n be_v from_o the_o lion_n and_o as_o many_o more_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v be_v preserve_v in_o their_o great_a peril_n john_n call_v this_o goodly_a cedar_n 2._o cedar_n rev._n 22._o 2._o the_o tree_n of_o life_n who_o leaf_n be_v for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o nation_n for_o they_o have_v a_o sovereign_a virtue_n to_o heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n of_o our_o soul_n if_o we_o can_v right_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o by_o a_o true_a faith_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n crucify_v for_o we_o we_o need_v not_o then_o fear_v the_o power_n or_o malice_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n or_o the_o danger_n that_o be_v incident_a to_o we_o in_o this_o life_n if_o we_o can_v shroud_v ourselves_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o tree_n here_o be_v great_a consolation_n for_o our_o poor_a soul_n against_o the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n the_o fierceness_n of_o god_n wrath_n the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o against_o the_o devil_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n because_o christ_n be_v our_o king_n our_o head_n and_o a_o tree_n of_o life_n to_o we_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o misery_n to_o strengthen_v we_o against_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o cure_v we_o of_o all_o the_o wound_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n to_o shelter_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a life_n though_o 16_o though_o rev._n ●8_o 16_o christ_n be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o have_v the_o command_n over_o all_o create_a power_n and_o principality_n yet_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o do_v vail_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o deity_n with_o our_o nature_n and_o lay_v aside_o his_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n 8_o authority_n phil._n 3._o 7_o 8_o and_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o more_o he_o suffer_v the_o more_o do_v his_o innocency_n appear_v and_o the_o great_a be_v his_o honour_n in_o the_o conquest_n that_o he_o get_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n that_o he_o may_v strengthen_v we_o in_o our_o suffering_n with_o assure_a hope_n of_o a_o glorious_a victory_n over_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n though_o sometime_o we_o may_v be_v foil_v by_o they_o and_o also_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sadness_n of_o spirit_n and_o in_o whatsoever_o we_o shall_v suffer_v for_o his_o name_n sake_n it_o be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o we_o to_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o christ_n our_o head_n though_o it_o be_v as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o his_o humiliation_n when_o he_o be_v make_v the_o scorn_n of_o man_n 12._o man_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 12._o for_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o reign_v with_o he_o he_o have_v go_v before_o we_o in_o the_o same_o step_n to_o make_v the_o rugged_a path_n of_o affliction_n plain_a and_o smooth_a to_o we_o 7._o we_o jam._n 4._o 7._o if_o we_o resist_v the_o devil_n with_o the_o shield_n of_o faith_n christ_n our_o king_n will_v make_v he_o fly_v from_o we_o if_o we_o cease_v not_o to_o labour_v and_o strive_v against_o our_o sin_n and_o corruption_n though_o our_o natural_a strength_n can_v overcome_v they_o yet_o christ_n will_v give_v we_o strength_n of_o grace_n in_o his_o good_a time_n to_o subdue_v they_o for_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o enemy_n to_o overthrow_v his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n if_o once_o it_o be_v plant_v in_o our_o heart_n but_o he_o will_v keep_v and_o defend_v it_o from_o the_o spoiler_n and_o though_o the_o devil_n do_v take_v advantage_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o thereby_o seek_v to_o root_v out_o that_o spiritual_a seed_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o we_o yet_o he_o shall_v never_o prevail_v for_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o immortal_a foundation_n which_o can_v
be_v overthrow_v it_o may_v be_v shake_v with_o his_o boisterous_a and_o violent_a temptation_n but_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v cast_v down_o because_o our_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o sure_a rock_n which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n our_o king_n and_o head_n if_o sorrow_n and_o cross_n break_v in_o upon_o we_o which_o we_o can_v not_o prevent_v nor_o avoid_v we_o need_v not_o fear_v for_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o christ_n either_o in_o our_o strength_n and_o patience_n to_o bear_v they_o meek_o or_o in_o our_o deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o or_o else_o he_o will_v sanctify_v they_o to_o our_o good_a we_o need_v not_o cark_n and_o care_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n but_o when_o we_o have_v do_v our_o best_a endeavour_n in_o a_o honest_a and_o lawful_a call_n we_o must_v leave_v the_o event_n and_o success_n to_o god_n which_o peculiar_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o then_o he_o will_v have_v a_o care_n of_o we_o 3._o we_o deut._n 8._o 3._o for_o man_n live_v not_o by_o bread_n only_o but_o by_o every_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n 24_o lord_n luc._n 12._o 24_o god_n feed_v the_o young_a raven_n when_o they_o cry_v unto_o he_o then_o much_o more_o will_v he_o feed_v we_o for_o it_o be_v part_n of_o his_o kingly_a office_n to_o provide_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v needful_a for_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o shall_v not_o the_o head_n provide_v for_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n and_o shall_v not_o christ_n provide_v for_o we_o who_o have_v near_a relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n now_o try_v and_o examine_v thyself_o search_v into_o thy_o own_o soul_n to_o see_v if_o christ_n have_v set_v up_o his_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n in_o thy_o heart_n to_o bear_v rule_n in_o thy_o affection_n to_o regulate_v thy_o crooked_a and_o perverse_a will_n and_o to_o bring_v unto_o his_o subjection_n whatsoever_o resist_v or_o rebell_v against_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n if_o thou_o do_v find_v the_o fruit_n of_o sanctify_a grace_n in_o thou_o then_o make_v a_o further_a scrutiny_n to_o see_v unto_o what_o measure_n of_o grace_n thou_o have_v attain_v what_o corruption_n have_v it_o mortify_v in_o thou_o what_o strong_a hold_v of_o sinful_a lust_n have_v it_o beat_v down_o how_o be_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n dismember_v and_o weaken_v how_o strong_a be_v thy_o faith_n to_o rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o christ_n in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n can_v thou_o joyful_o bear_v the_o scandal_n of_o the_o cross_n can_v thou_o meek_o bear_v the_o loss_n of_o thy_o friend_n of_o thy_o liberty_n or_o estate_n for_o his_o sake_n have_v thou_o faith_n and_o patience_n to_o suffer_v affliction_n persecution_n sword_n or_o famine_n for_o he_o and_o can_v thou_o resist_v unto_o blood_n if_o christ_n thy_o king_n shall_v call_v thou_o to_o it_o then_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n be_v well_o establish_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o hereafter_o thou_o shall_v have_v a_o large_a inheritance_n in_o his_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n 10_o pet._n 1._o 10_o wherefore_o give_v all_o diligence_n to_o make_v thy_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a that_o thou_o may_v be_v invest_v into_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n here_o which_o will_v bring_v thou_o hereafter_o to_o eternal_a blessedness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o set_v thy_o mind_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v thy_o king_n and_o resolve_v with_o a_o holy_a resolution_n to_o submit_v thyself_o to_o his_o rule_n and_o government_n to_o be_v direct_v by_o he_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n and_o to_o express_v thy_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o for_o his_o great_a care_n of_o thou_o who_o by_o his_o divine_a providence_n dispose_v all_o thing_n for_o thy_o good_a if_o trouble_n and_o calamity_n follow_v thou_o like_o the_o billow_n of_o the_o sea_n christ_n will_v calm_v they_o if_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o overwhelm_v thou_o then_o even_o then_o will_v christ_n take_v thou_o by_o the_o hand_n 31_o hand_n mat._n 14._o 31_o as_o he_o do_v peter_n upon_o the_o sea_n and_o will_v keep_v thou_o from_o sink_v if_o god_n look_v angry_o upon_o thou_o for_o thy_o sin_n christ_n will_v appease_v his_o wrath_n and_o make_v intercession_n for_o thou_o if_o death_n look_v upon_o thou_o with_o a_o grim_a countenance_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o bereave_v thou_o of_o thy_o soul_n and_o to_o expose_v thy_o body_n to_o the_o worm_n yet_o know_v with_o holy_a job_n 25_o job_n job_n 19_o 25_o that_o thy_o redeemer_n live_v also_o 22._o also_o luc_n 6._o 22._o that_o he_o will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v to_o carry_v thy_o soul_n up_o into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o at_o length_n he_o will_v raise_v up_o thy_o body_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o will_v make_v it_o a_o glorious_a and_o incorruptible_a body_n fit_a to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o thus_o and_o much_o more_o will_v christ_n do_v for_o all_o those_o that_o have_v any_o relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n or_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o great_a name_n and_o for_o the_o eternal_a good_a of_o his_o church_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ._n when_o christ_n have_v finish_v his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o his_o ministry_n and_o have_v wrought_v so_o many_o miracle_n as_o seem_v good_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n the_o time_n be_v then_o come_v that_o he_o must_v offer_v up_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o our_o redemption_n which_o be_v his_o whole_a humane_a nature_n soul_n and_o body_n for_o our_o sin_n then_o 25._o then_o rom._n 4._o 25._o god_n deliver_v he_o up_o to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o our_o offence_n because_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sinne_n be_v charge_v upon_o he_o for_o before_o this_o very_a time_n neither_o the_o devil_n nor_o his_o deadly_a enemy_n have_v any_o power_n against_o he_o this_o be_v the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v decree_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n that_o christ_n shall_v submit_v himself_o to_o their_o malice_n and_o power_n that_o the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v send_v he_o to_o do_v may_v be_v finish_v and_o when_o that_o work_n be_v perfect_o wrought_v than_o god_n deliver_v he_o out_o of_o their_o power_n by_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o prepare_v our_o heart_n for_o holy_a and_o devout_a meditation_n upon_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v most_o bitter_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n because_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o he_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v let_v loose_a against_o he_o like_v so_o many_o wolf_n to_o worry_v this_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n or_o like_v so_o many_o fierce_a mastiff_n against_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n but_o the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n do_v carry_v he_o through_o his_o whole_a passion_n and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o overcome_v the_o sury_n of_o all_o his_o enemy_n though_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o torment_v and_o torture_v he_o at_o their_o pleasure_n even_o to_o the_o death_n christ_n suffer_v nothing_o for_o himself_o but_o it_o be_v for_o all_o those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o guilt_n of_o who_o sin_n he_o do_v take_v upon_o himself_o and_o to_o pay_v their_o debt_n to_o satisfy_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o by_o his_o death_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n also_o it_o be_v to_o clothe_v they_o with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n that_o they_o may_v be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n therefore_o let_v no_o circumstance_n of_o his_o passion_n pass_v without_o due_a consideration_n 12_o consideration_n lam._n 1._o 12_o behold_v and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o sorrow_n like_a unto_o his_o sorrow_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v afflict_v he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o fierce_a anger_n how_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o beauty_n stain_v how_o be_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n cloud_v how_o be_v the_o bright_a morning_n star_n darken_v how_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n contemn_v blaspheme_v scorn_v and_o spiteful_o use_v how_o be_v perfect_a holiness_n and_o innocency_n accuse_v reject_v condemn_a cruel_o torment_v and_o most_o shameful_o kill_v and_o how_o be_v truth_n itself_o despise_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n can_v we_o think_v upon_o his_o passion_n without_o tear_n and_o mourning_n if_o we_o belong_v unto_o he_o can_v we_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o and_o not_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v ourselves_o who_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o suffer_v these_o thing_n and_o much_o
god_n that_o do_v purge_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n also_o john_n say_v 7_o say_v rev._n 1._o 7_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n so_o that_o no_o spot_n no_o stain_n no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n to_o our_o condemnation_n and_o as_o he_o in_o himself_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinite_a so_o the_o price_n which_o he_o pay_v at_o his_o passion_n for_o our_o redemption_n be_v of_o infinite_a worth_n and_o the_o benefit_n that_o we_o receive_v by_o he_o be_v likewise_o infinite_a if_o we_o be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o sting_n which_o sin_n have_v put_v into_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o possess_v be_v take_v away_o and_o we_o may_v comfortable_o use_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n by_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n have_v sanctify_v they_o to_o we_o for_o our_o good_a riches_n shall_v not_o make_v we_o proud_a or_o ambitious_a nor_o steal_v away_o our_o heart_n from_o god_n want_n and_o penury_n shall_v not_o make_v we_o repine_v or_o murmur_v against_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o make_v we_o forsake_v he_o but_o all_o thing_n shall_v work_v together_o for_o our_o good_a death_n shall_v not_o be_v terrible_a but_o advantage_n to_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v sleep_v quiet_o in_o our_o grave_n until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n because_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n will_v lie_v down_o with_o we_o in_o the_o dust_n to_o follow_v we_o unto_o judgement_n though_o sin_n have_v wound_v our_o soul_n 2._o soul_n mal._n 4._o 2._o yet_o if_o we_o fear_v his_o name_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n shall_v arise_v with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n to_o cure_v it_o for_o 34._o for_o luc._n 10._o 34._o christ_n like_o the_o good_a samaritan_n will_v pour_v in_o wine_n and_o oil_n to_o cleanse_v and_o heal_v it_o though_o sin_n do_v sometime_o overpower_v we_o yet_o christ_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n will_v subdue_v and_o kill_v it_o in_o we_o and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o will_v quicken_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o he_o will_v make_v our_o unruly_a passion_n and_o sinful_a desire_n to_o be_v tributary_n and_o servant_n to_o we_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o of_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n 23._o grace_n josh_n 9_o 23._o as_o joshua_n make_v the_o gibeonite_n hewer_n of_o wood_n and_o drawer_n of_o water_n for_o the_o house_n of_o god_n last_o 10._o last_o 1_o thes_n 1._o 10._o christ_n have_v deliver_v we_o by_o his_o passion_n from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v and_o from_o all_o the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o our_o sin_n christ_n do_v not_o begin_v his_o passion_n until_o he_o have_v fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n in_o his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n that_o the_o law_n require_v though_o his_o whole_a life_n be_v a_o life_n of_o suffering_n and_o of_o sorrow_n but_o when_o he_o know_v that_o the_o time_n be_v at_o hand_n when_o he_o must_v offer_v up_o his_o body_n a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n 21_o world_n mat._n 26._o 21_o he_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v betray_v he_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n 32_o enemy_n joh._n 16._o 32_o &_o that_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v scatter_v from_o he_o and_o also_o what_o he_o shall_v suffer_v in_o his_o passion_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o shrink_v from_o it_o but_o do_v willing_o undertake_v it_o because_o it_o be_v his_o father_n will_n to_o have_v it_o so_o wherefore_o he_o do_v arm_v himself_o with_o divine_a patience_n and_o meekness_n to_o suffer_v whatsoever_o be_v appoint_v in_o god_n decree_n shall_v be_v put_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o prepare_v himself_o by_o prayer_n for_o that_o great_a work_n this_o be_v to_o teach_v we_o to_o submit_v with_o all_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o all_o our_o suffering_n how_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o for_o they_o and_o how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o in_o they_o god_n have_v appoint_v every_o man_n some_o work_n to_o do_v and_o when_o one_o work_n be_v finish_v he_o have_v another_o ready_a for_o he_o for_o god_n require_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v diligent_a and_o painful_a in_o our_o calling_n frequent_a in_o holy_a duty_n and_o industrious_a in_o his_o vineyard_n 6_o vineyard_n mat._n 20._o 6_o the_o good_a housholder_n in_o the_o gospel_n rebuke_v those_o that_o do_v stand_v all_o the_o day_n idle_a 49_o idle_a eze._n 16._o 49_o idleness_n be_v one_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o sodom_n which_o bring_v down_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n upon_o it_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o property_n of_o a_o good_a wife_n 27_o wife_n pro._n 31._o 27_o that_o she_o look_v well_o to_o the_o way_n of_o her_o household_n and_o eat_v not_o the_o bread_n of_o idleness_n god_n do_v not_o appoint_v to_o every_o one_o their_o work_n alike_o for_o paul_n have_v more_o work_v appoint_v he_o than_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n 28._o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o for_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n come_v daily_o upon_o he_o abraham_n have_v hard_a work_n to_o do_v when_o he_o be_v to_o offer_v up_o his_o only_a son_n to_o god_n than_o any_o of_o the_o patriarch_n if_o god_n appoint_v much_o work_n he_o will_v give_v time_n to_o do_v it_o if_o his_o work_n be_v hard_a strength_n and_o ability_n to_o go_v through_o with_o it_o wherefore_o if_o god_n shall_v call_v we_o to_o any_o hard_a service_n which_o be_v not_o please_v to_o our_o nature_n or_o may_v seem_v impossible_a to_o humane_a strength_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o consult_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n what_o to_o do_v but_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n though_o we_o can_v expect_v no_o outward_a help_n nor_o support_v in_o it_o for_o if_o we_o rest_v upon_o god_n he_o know_v how_o &_o when_o to_o make_v we_o able_a to_o perform_v what_o he_o command_v and_o to_o bear_v what_o he_o lay_v upon_o we_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v assist_v we_o in_o his_o own_o work_n we_o shall_v set_v upon_o it_o with_o good_a courage_n and_o christian_a fortitude_n that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o do_v any_o work_n that_o god_n command_v we_o must_v prepare_v ourselves_o for_o it_o by_o faithful_a prayer_n and_o then_o rest_v upon_o the_o assist_a grace_n of_o god_n with_o steadfast_a hope_n that_o he_o will_v both_o help_v we_o in_o it_o and_o will_v bless_v and_o prosper_v our_o endeavour_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o comfort_n thus_o we_o shall_v do_v every_o day_n in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o call_n but_o chief_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n when_o we_o shall_v spend_v our_o whole_a time_n in_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n now_o let_v our_o heart_n faithful_o meditate_v upon_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o upon_o every_o particular_a that_o he_o suffer_v for_o our_o sake_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o bitterness_n of_o it_o for_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v in_o every_o part_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o follow_v he_o from_o place_n to_o place_n even_o to_o mount_v calvary_n until_o divine_a justice_n be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o all_o our_o sin_n then_o we_o shall_v embrace_v he_o with_o hearty_a affection_n and_o our_o soul_n will_v rest_v comfort_v in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n thereby_o of_o christ_n agony_n in_o the_o garden_n the_o hour_n be_v now_o come_v when_o christ_n must_v pay_v the_o whole_a debt_n to_o god_n his_o father_n which_o he_o do_v undertake_v for_o we_o now_o be_v the_o time_n when_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n must_v be_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n now_o do_v god_n deliver_v up_o his_o dear_a son_n to_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n now_o do_v he_o cloud_v the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o glorious_a countenance_n from_o he_o and_o leave_v he_o to_o himself_o to_o encounter_v with_o the_o devil_n because_o be_v see_v the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n upon_o he_o and_o now_o do_v the_o devil_n take_v a_o double_a advantage_n against_o our_o dear_a saviour_n and_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o malice_n he_o do_v fierce_o set_v upon_o he_o in_o a_o single_a combat_n think_v now_o to_o prevail_v because_o god_n do_v seem_v to_o discountenance_v he_o and_o also_o because_o there_o be_v sin_n and_o that_o very_o great_a which_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o the_o detestable_a and_o abominable_a sin_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o and_o the_o devil_n know_v how_o odious_a and_o
he_o smite_v he_o with_o his_o sword_n and_o he_o die_v 29._o die_v 2_o sam._n 13._o 28_o 29._o thus_o treacherous_o do_v absalon_n kill_v his_o brother_n amnon_n when_o he_o invite_v he_o to_o a_o feast_n in_o his_o own_o house_n the_o disciple_n do_v little_o think_v that_o judas_n betray_v his_o master_n when_o he_o come_v and_o salute_v he_o with_o a_o kiss_n but_o christ_n know_v it_o who_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n and_o none_o but_o he_o can_v know_v it_o for_o he_o know_v what_o he_o have_v do_v with_o the_o ruler_n what_o compact_n and_o bargain_n he_o have_v make_v with_o they_o and_o what_o he_o do_v further_a purpose_n and_o intend_v to_o do_v and_o therefore_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o 4●_n he_o luke_n 22._o 4●_n judas_z betray_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o man_n with_o a_o kiss_n thus_o say_v a_o reverend_a divine_a it_o be_v a_o special_a cunning_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o it_o be_v full_a of_o danger_n to_o put_v a_o smile_a and_o a_o allure_a countenance_n upon_o his_o bait_n as_o he_o do_v by_o his_o temptation_n of_o profit_n and_o gain_v which_o like_o unseen_a bullet_n wound_n and_o kill_v before_o they_o be_v discern_v or_o like_o the_o viper_n that_o put_v we_o to_o no_o pain_n bring_v we_o into_o a_o please_a slumber_n of_o security_n which_o end_v in_o the_o dead_a sleep_n of_o death_n and_o condemnation_n for_o prosperity_n and_o worldly_a allurement_n hide_v hostility_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o friendship_n and_o make_v we_o love_v the_o weapon_n that_o hurt_v we_o and_o to_o refuse_v the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v cure_v and_o these_o make_v conquest_n not_o only_o of_o our_o power_n and_o strength_n but_o also_o of_o our_o heart_n will_n and_o affection_n and_o they_o retain_v we_o in_o a_o voluntary_a servitude_n have_v no_o desire_n to_o come_v out_o of_o this_o please_a bondage_n or_o to_o recover_v our_o liberty_n though_o the_o mean_n be_v offer_v to_o we_o this_o be_v the_o policy_n and_o subtle_a cunning_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o beguile_v poor_a soul_n with_o such_o fair_a pretence_n for_o in_o their_o smile_n and_o fawn_n he_o do_v secret_o attempt_v their_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n consider_v further_o 8._o further_o mat._n 10._o 1_o 8._o that_o when_o jesus_n send_v forth_o his_o twelve_o disciple_n to_o preach_v he_o give_v unto_o they_o all_o power_n against_o unclean_a spirit_n to_o cast_v they_o out_o to_o heal_v all_o manner_n of_o sickness_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o disease_n to_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n and_o to_o raise_v the_o dead_a they_o have_v free_o receive_v these_o gift_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v free_o dispense_v they_o judas_n have_v the_o same_o power_n and_o receive_v the_o same_o gift_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n but_o because_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o season_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n though_o he_o do_v cure_v other_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o cure_v himself_o and_o though_o 29._o though_o 1_o cor._n 9_o 29._o he_o do_v preach_v to_o other_o yet_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o castaway_n he_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o preach_v but_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o preach_v he_o have_v faith_n to_o work_v miracle_n but_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n unto_o justification_n and_o to_o rest_n and_o confide_v in_o christ_n for_o his_o salvation_n these_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v sometime_o give_v to_o unregenerate_a man_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v no_o whit_n near_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n rest_v secure_a of_o his_o salvation_n because_o he_o have_v such_o excellent_a gift_n for_o except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v confer_v sanctify_v grace_n with_o his_o gift_n they_o will_v not_o be_v effectual_a to_o salvation_n we_o may_v have_v the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n of_o temperance_n of_o continency_n of_o patience_n and_o of_o all_o moral_a virtue_n and_o yet_o if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n that_o we_o can_v pray_v in_o faith_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o all_o other_o virtue_n as_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n they_o will_v not_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n nor_o profitable_a to_o we_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o if_o god_n have_v give_v we_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n we_o ought_v to_o use_v his_o gift_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o his_o gift_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o eternal_a life_n let_v this_o be_v our_o daily_a study_n and_o constant_a care_n to_o enrich_v our_o soul_n with_o true_a save_a grace_n and_o then_o the_o devil_n can_v so_o easy_o undermine_v we_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o watchful_a over_o our_o way_n that_o no_o iniquity_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n for_o if_o the_o devil_n can_v fasten_v any_o one_o sin_n upon_o we_o he_o will_v soon_o link_v another_o sin_n to_o that_o and_o will_v draw_v we_o on_o from_o sin_n to_o sin_n until_o they_o make_v a_o strong_a chain_n which_o will_v pull_v we_o down_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o destruction_n unless_o we_o break_v every_o link_n of_o this_o chain_n with_o true_a repentance_n also_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o watchful_a it_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o security_n and_o from_o presume_v upon_o our_o own_o strength_n in_o time_n or_o place_n of_o danger_n 37._o danger_n psa_fw-la 119._o 37._o and_o we_o shall_v turn_v our_o eye_n from_o behold_v vanity_n and_o refuse_v the_o false_a favour_n which_o the_o world_n do_v promise_v we_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n will_v be_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n and_o then_o we_o may_v be_v confident_a 11_o confident_a psa_fw-la 91._o 11_o that_o god_n will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o we_o to_o keep_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n lest_o at_o any_o time_n we_o dash_v our_o foot_n against_o a_o stone_n or_o lest_o we_o stumble_v at_o those_o block_n which_o the_o devil_n lay_v in_o our_o way_n 41._o way_n mat._n 26._o 41._o christ_n have_v command_v we_o to_o watch_v and_o pray_v that_o we_o enter_v not_o into_o temptation_n 13._o temptation_n eph._n 6._o 13._o and_o he_o have_v give_v we_o spiritual_a armour_n and_o weapon_n of_o defence_n which_o we_o must_v take_v unto_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resist_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n let_v we_o learn_v 5._o learn_v psa_fw-la 58._o 5._o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o serpent_n by_o stop_v our_o ear_n against_o their_o charm_a persuasion_n and_o by_o suspect_v most_o their_o malicious_a attempt_n when_o with_o great_a show_n of_o love_n they_o smile_v and_o fawn_v upon_o we_o we_o must_v now_o consider_v by_o the_o example_n of_o judas_n that_o unless_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v accompany_v the_o use_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n we_o may_v outward_o partake_v of_o they_o but_o we_o shall_v not_o inward_o be_v edify_v by_o they_o neither_o shall_v we_o find_v any_o spiritual_a consolation_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o because_o there_o be_v no_o efficacious_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n the_o outward_a man_n may_v be_v affect_v for_o the_o present_a but_o the_o inward_a man_n can_v be_v edify_v for_o there_o will_v be_v no_o illumination_n wrought_v in_o the_o understanding_n to_o conceive_v right_o of_o heavenly_a thing_n no_o true_a conformity_n in_o the_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n no_o holy_a zeal_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o no_o pious_a reformation_n will_v be_v wrought_v in_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n 2._o conversation_n 2_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 2._o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n all_o man_n do_v not_o profit_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o all_o man_n be_v not_o edify_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o may_v join_v with_o the_o congregation_n in_o hear_v in_o pray_v in_o sing_v of_o psalm_n some_o shall_v receive_v comfort_n and_o instruction_n other_o shall_v receive_v no_o benefit_n thereby_o we_o may_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o we_o may_v feed_v our_o body_n with_o the_o outward_a element_n in_o that_o sacrament_n but_o we_o shall_v never_o feed_v and_o nourish_v our_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n with_o that_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o except_o our_o heart_n be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v it_o through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o we_o can_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o faith_n our_o soul_n may_v languish_v and_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o heavenly_a food_n and_o nourishment_n if_o the_o milk_n of_o god_n word_n and_o this_o spiritual_a food_n
be_v not_o convey_v to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n as_o it_o i●_n to_o the_o ear_n and_o to_o the_o hand_n by_o the_o minister_n also_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a appetite_n to_o it_o that_o our_o heart●_n may_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o it_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o sweet_a savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n unto_o we_o but_o rather_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n if_o the_o devil_n can_v bereave_v we_o of_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o make_v we_o lose_v the_o opportunity_n of_o it_o and_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o do_v judas_n he_o will_v then_o lead_v we_o on_o in_o a_o sinful_a and_o wicked_a course_n of_o life_n until_o he_o do_v bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a perdition_n thus_o by_o degree_n he_o bring_v judas_n from_o infidelity_n to_o hardness_n of_o heart_n after_o he_o have_v take_v possession_n of_o he_o until_o at_o last_o he_o fall_v into_o despair_n and_o become_v his_o own_o executioner_n for_o his_o damnable_a treason_n against_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n for_o present_o after_o he_o hang_v himself_o 8._o himself_o act._n 1._o 8._o he_o burst_v asunder_o in_o the_o midst_n and_o all_o his_o bowel_n gush_v out_o thus_o do_v god_n give_v he_o his_o just_a reward_n for_o his_o horrible_a sin_n and_o impiety_n against_o christ_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v one_o of_o his_o disciple_n and_o have_v as_o much_o mean_n of_o grace_n as_o the_o rest_n have_v and_o also_o as_o many_o common_a and_o external_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o have_v and_o do_v see_v the_o great_a work_n that_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o thus_o will_v god_n show_v his_o justice_n and_o judgement_n upon_o impenitent_a and_o notorious_a offender_n that_o be_v so_o harden_v in_o their_o sin_n that_o no_o mean_n of_o grace_n can_v bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n now_o examine_v thyself_o thou_o that_o daily_o see_v the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n if_o thou_o can_v look_v beyond_o nature_n and_o see_v his_o power_n and_o wise_a providence_n in_o they_o if_o thou_o can_v discern_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n when_o great_a man_n be_v bring_v down_o and_o man_n of_o low_a degree_n be_v exalt_v also_o if_o thou_o can_v see_v how_o god_n will_v bring_v to_o pass_v his_o own_o design_n against_o all_o opposition_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o that_o he_o can_v discover_v the_o hellish_a plot_n and_o magination_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n 15._o instrument_n plal._n 7._o 15._o and_o will_v make_v they_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o pit_n which_o they_o have_v dig_v for_o other_o 10._o other_o esth_n 1._o 10._o as_o he_o do_v unto_o wicked_a haman_n if_o thou_o see_v these_o and_o the_o like_a thing_n come_v to_o pass_v thou_o must_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o church_n peter_n do_v see_v the_o great_a work_n of_o christ_n &_o he_o do_v believe_v that_o they_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n judas_n do_v also_o see_v the_o same_o work_n but_o he_o can_v not_o discern_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o if_o thy_o condition_n be_v like_a unto_o that_o of_o peter_n that_o thou_o can_v see_v a_o divine_a power_n in_o the_o great_a work_n that_o be_v wrought_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o that_o god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o providence_n can_v dispose_v of_o all_o the_o troublesome_a chance_n and_o change_n that_o happen_v here_o either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n to_o the_o good_a of_o his_o people_n and_o to_o the_o confusion_n of_o he_o and_o their_o enemy_n then_o thou_o do_v right_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o god_n by_o a_o spiritual_a illumination_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o heart_n but_o if_o with_o judas_n thou_o can_v not_o discern_v god_n divine_a power_n in_o his_o work_n on_o earth_n to_o over-rule_v all_o adversary_n power_n 2._o power_n psal_n 2._o 2._o though_o they_o rage_n in_o fury_n and_o take_v counsel_n together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o anointed_n then_o thy_o understanding_n be_v blind_v and_o thou_o lie_v open_a to_o all_o kind_n of_o danger_n and_o distraction_n of_o mind_n search_v again_o into_o thy_o own_o heart_n thou_o that_o live_v where_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v sincere_o preach_v and_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n right_o and_o due_o administer_v and_o examine_v thyself_o with_o what_o affection_n thou_o do_v come_v to_o those_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n what_o grace_n be_v wrought_v in_o thou_o and_o how_o thy_o faith_n be_v strengthen_v by_o they_o how_o much_o sin_n be_v weaken_v and_o how_o thy_o life_n be_v reform_v also_o examine_v what_o spiritual_a life_n thou_o have_v what_o fruit_n it_o do_v bring_v forth_o what_o care_v thou_o have_v to_o nourish_v it_o by_o thy_o profitable_a hear_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o thy_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n if_o thou_o can_v give_v a_o good_a account_n that_o thou_o have_v spend_v thy_o time_n profitable_o and_o have_v improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o best_a advantage_n then_o thou_o be_v a_o faithful_a servant_n to_o thy_o lord_n and_o master_n jesus_n christ_n as_o peter_n be_v but_o if_o this_o heavenly_a food_n will_v not_o please_v thy_o palate_n it_o can_v nourish_v and_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n because_o thou_o have_v some_o secret_a corruption_n or_o some_o belove_a sin_n that_o keep_v the_o sweet_a influence_n of_o grace_n from_o thy_o heart_n and_o then_o thou_o will_v reap_v as_o little_a benefit_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n as_o wretched_a judas_n do_v though_o he_o hear_v christ_n himself_o preach_v to_o he_o sure_o god_n do_v still_o send_v down_o this_o heavenly_a manna_n bless_v be_v his_o holy_a name_n for_o it_o and_o thou_o may_v gather_v it_o for_o the_o nourishment_n and_o comfort_n of_o thy_o soul_n if_o thou_o will_v but_o if_o thou_o can_v find_v no_o spiritual_a sweetness_n in_o it_o thy_o taste_n be_v not_o then_o spiritual_a but_o it_o be_v dull_v with_o worldly_a care_n or_o sinful_a pleasure_n which_o must_v be_v purge_v out_o of_o thy_o heart_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o thou_o can_v with_o peter_n take_v pleasure_n and_o delight_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n 68_o christ_n john_n 6._o 68_o which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o before_o thou_o can_v make_v it_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o heart_n to_o meditate_v on_o the_o statute_n of_o god_n how_o can_v thou_o hazard_v thy_o life_n for_o christ_n as_o peter_n do_v and_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o gospel_n if_o thou_o be_v not_o well_o instruct_v and_o a_o good_a proficient_a in_o his_o school_n and_o how_o can_v thou_o live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o god_n if_o thy_o heart_n have_v not_o suck_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o christ_n by_o faith_n who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o this_o water_n of_o life_n and_o of_o this_o celestial_a food_n to_o nourish_v thou_o up_o to_o everlasting_a life_n look_v now_o a_o little_a upon_o peter_n zeal_n for_o his_o master_n safety_n he_o resist_v those_o that_o come_v to_o apprehend_v he_o 11._o he_o john_n 18._o 10_o 11._o and_o smite_v the_o high_a priest_n servant_n but_o christ_n cure_v the_o wound_n and_o rebuke_v peter_n for_o it_o because_o his_o zeal_n be_v not_o well_o ground_v for_o he_o do_v endeavour_v to_o hinder_v he_o in_o the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v he_o to_o do_v concern_v man_n redemption_n and_o therefore_o christ_n say_v unto_o he_o the_o cup_n which_o my_o father_n have_v give_v i_o shall_v i_o not_o drink_v it_o this_o may_v teach_v we_o to_o drink_v willing_o any_o cup_n of_o affliction_n that_o our_o heavenly_a father_n shall_v give_v we_o for_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a to_o we_o if_o we_o receive_v it_o from_o god_n as_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o father_n also_o that_o holy_a zeal_n or_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n in_o god_n cause_n be_v a_o duty_n which_o he_o require_v and_o his_o servant_n do_v practice_v it_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v regulate_v according_a to_o knowledge_n and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o blind_a zeal_n will_v lead_v we_o into_o many_o error_n david_n zeal_n be_v right_o regulate_v 139._o regulate_v psal_n 119._o 139._o my_o zeal_n say_v he_o have_v consume_v i_o because_o thy_o enemy_n have_v forget_v thy_o word_n 12._o word_n num._n 25._o 11_o 12._o such_o be_v the_o zeal_n of_o phinehas_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o zimri_n and_o cozby_n which_o turn_v away_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n from_o the_o
use_v the_o power_n of_o angel_n for_o his_o defence_n nor_o his_o own_o divine_a power_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o their_o fury_n and_o rage_n for_o though_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n they_o be_v smite_v to_o the_o ground_n yet_o he_o suffer_v they_o to_o rise_v again_o and_o he_o do_v voluntary_o put_v himself_o into_o their_o hand_n to_o lead_v he_o away_o whither_o they_o will_v thus_o meek_o do_v christ_n submit_v to_o his_o father_n will_n for_o he_o be_v not_o of_o elijah_n fiery_a spirit_n 1_o spirit_n 2_o king_n 1_o who_o call_v for_o fire_n from_o heaven_n which_o consume_v two_o captain_n and_o their_o fifty_n who_o king_n ahaziah_n send_v to_o apprehend_v he_o the_o disciple_n that_o be_v at_o caesarea_n beseech_v paul_n with_o many_o tear_n not_o to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n because_o agabus_n have_v prophesy_v that_o there_o he_o shall_v be_v bind_v and_o deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o gentile_n yet_o paul_n will_v not_o be_v persuade_v but_o l●ke_v a_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n he_o answer_v they_o thus_o 13._o thus_o act_n 21._o 13._o what_o do_v you_o mean_v to_o weep_v and_o to_o break_v my_o heart_n for_o i_o be_o ready_a not_o to_o be_v bind_v only_o but_o also_o to_o die_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n look_v also_o upon_o the_o admirable_a mildness_n of_o christ_n who_o give_v these_o friendly_a and_o familiar_a word_n to_o that_o wicked_a traitor_n when_o he_o come_v to_o betray_v he_o 50_o he_o mat._n 26_o 50_o friend_n wherefore_o be_v thou_o come_v and_o again_o he_o say_v 44._o say_v luk._n 22._o 44._o judas_n betray_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o man_n with_o a_o kiss_n these_o mild_a and_o gracious_a word_n may_v have_v mollify_v his_o obdurate_a heart_n and_o touch_v his_o conscience_n with_o remorse_n if_o 28_o if_o rom._n 1._o 28_o god_n have_v not_o give_v he_o over_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n this_o be_v to_o teach_v we_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n when_o our_o suppose_a friend_n prove_v treacherous_a and_o when_o our_o kindness_n be_v spiteful_o reward_v for_o we_o be_v command_v by_o christ_n himself_o 48._o himself_o mat._n 5_o 48._o to_o bless_v they_o that_o curse_v we_o to_o love_v our_o enemy_n to_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v we_o and_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o despiteful_o use_v we_o and_o persecute_v we_o as_o christ_n give_v we_o this_o in_o precept_n so_o likewise_o he_o give_v it_o we_o by_o his_o own_o example_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v unpleasing_a to_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o we_o can_v hear_v it_o unless_o christ_n do_v endow_v we_o with_o his_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n by_o the_o example_n of_o these_o two_o disciple_n we_o may_v examine_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n whether_o there_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o to_o make_v we_o faithful_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o can_v stick_v close_o to_o he_o with_o peter_n whatsoever_o we_o shall_v suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n or_o the_o seed_n of_o hypocrisy_n which_o reach_v only_o to_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o name_n when_o there_o be_v no_o opposition_n against_o it_o and_o when_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o advantage_n for_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n will_v make_v a_o hypocrite_n forsake_fw-mi christ_n and_o hope_v of_o lucre_n will_v make_v he_o change_v his_o profession_n of_o he_o as_o it_o do_v judas_n we_o may_v also_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o to_o live_v in_o a_o religious_a family_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o good_a servant_n and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o faithful_a disciple_n of_o christ_n except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v change_v the_o heart_n and_o affection_n from_o their_o sinful_a condition_n to_o a_o holy_a conformity_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n wherefore_o let_v this_o be_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o express_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o grace_n by_o our_o faithfulness_n unto_o christ_n in_o all_o our_o suffering_n for_o he_o also_o so_o to_o live_v in_o a_o religious_a family_n and_o so_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n that_o some_o gracious_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v see_v upon_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n by_o the_o purity_n of_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n what_o christ_n suffer_v under_o caiaphas_n when_o christ_n be_v apprehend_v they_o bring_v he_o bind_v to_o caiaphas_n the_o high_a priest_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o malefactor_n where_o he_o be_v examine_v 26._o examine_v mat._n 26._o spit_v upon_o buffet_v smite_v deride_v and_o most_o spiteful_o use_v they_o seek_v false_a witness_n against_o he_o but_o find_v none_o that_o do_v agree_v one_o with_o another_o notwithstanding_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n to_o complain_v or_o to_o clear_v his_o own_o innocency_n that_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o he_o may_v be_v fulfil_v 7._o fulfil_v isa_n 53._o 7._o he_o be_v bring_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n and_o as_o a_o sheep_n before_o her_o shearer_n be_v d●mb_n so_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n his_o own_o nation_n the_o jew_n do_v offer_v those_o blasphemous_a indignity_n to_o he_o for_o they_o be_v ever_o a_o rebellious_a and_o stiffnecked_a people_n 2._o people_n ezech._n 2._o which_o make_v the_o lord_n so_o much_o and_o so_o often_o to_o complain_v of_o they_o by_o his_o prophet_n and_o they_o be_v still_o malicious_o bend_v against_o they_o because_o they_o rebuke_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n and_o rebellion_n against_o god_n whereby_o we_o may_v see_v how_o near_o it_o come_v unto_o god_n himself_o when_o his_o own_o people_n and_o they_o that_o profess_v his_o name_n prove_v disobedient_a and_o rebellious_a to_o he_o but_o they_o can_v find_v no_o fault_n with_o christ_n 46._o christ_n joh._n 8._o 46._o they_o can_v not_o convince_v he_o of_o any_o sin_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n ever_o find_v in_o his_o lip_n he_o do_v miraculous_o feed_v the_o hungry_a he_o cure_v the_o disease_a he_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n he_o cast_v out_o the_o devil_n he_o observe_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n and_o pay_v his_o tribute_n unto_o caesar_n and_o yet_o their_o rage_n and_o malice_n against_o he_o be_v full_a of_o cruelty_n because_o he_o lay_v open_v their_o gross_a hypocrisy_n and_o condemn_v their_o vain_a tradition_n and_o because_o he_o discover_v the_o unfaithfulness_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o the_o evil_a of_o their_o way_n such_o be_v the_o wilful_a blindness_n of_o their_o rabbi_n that_o they_o will_v not_o know_v christ_n nor_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n that_o be_v promise_v though_o his_o doctrine_n be_v most_o pure_a and_o powerful_a and_o his_o life_n suitable_a thereunto_o though_o he_o have_v wrought_v many_o great_a miracle_n among_o they_o and_o though_o most_o of_o their_o prophet_n have_v so_o plain_o foretold_v of_o he_o which_o be_v fulfil_v in_o their_o day_n for_o they_o stumble_v at_o his_o low_a condition_n of_o life_n and_o can_v not_o see_v the_o excellency_n and_o great_a worth_n that_o be_v in_o he_o though_o the_o wicked_a jew_n do_v use_v opprobrious_a word_n and_o blasphemous_a speech_n against_o our_o sweet_a saviour_n and_o though_o they_o do_v disdainful_o abuse_v he_o and_o unjust_o seek_v matter_n against_o he_o by_o false_a witness_n that_o they_o may_v accuse_v he_o before_o the_o roman_a governor_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n yet_o he_o do_v show_v divine_a patience_n and_o give_v not_o the_o least_o word_n of_o offence_n to_o his_o enemy_n notwithstanding_o they_o do_v thus_o strong_o provoke_v he_o to_o it_o if_o we_o do_v well_o consider_v this_o it_o will_v teach_v we_o by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o when_o we_o be_v under_o the_o like_a suffering_n also_o it_o will_v keep_v we_o humble_a mind_a and_o lowly_a not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o spiritual_a pride_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v for_o than_o we_o shall_v give_v the_o devil_n great_a advantage_n against_o we_o he_o will_v blind_v our_o understanding_n that_o we_o can_v right_o discern_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o just_a and_o he_o will_v infect_v our_o heart_n with_o hypocrisy_n so_o that_o other_o shall_v be_v seduce_v and_o beguile_v by_o our_o outward_a show_n of_o godliness_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o sincerity_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o at_o last_o our_o feign_a holiness_n will_v be_v discover_v 5_o discover_v 2_o tim._n 3._o 5_o because_o we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n and_o regard_v not_o to_o have_v the_o power_n of_o it_o in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n who_o be_v so_o proud_a of_o their_o outward_a holiness_n as_o the_o scribe_n and_o
pharisee_n who_o be_v great_a hypocrite_n and_o do_v deceive_v more_o with_o their_o seem_a sanctity_n than_o they_o and_o who_o be_v more_o cruel_o and_o malicious_o set_v against_o christ_n god_n anoint_v than_o they_o wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o keep_v down_o that_o high_a mindedness_n which_o we_o be_v prone_a unto_o if_o we_o be_v in_o any_o eminent_a place_n of_o authority_n in_o church_n or_o state_n or_o if_o we_o have_v any_o gift_n or_o endowment_n of_o the_o spirit_n above_o other_o man_n 5._o man_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 5._o for_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n unto_o the_o humble_a lest_o hereupon_o the_o devil_n draw_v we_o into_o his_o snare_n to_o dissemble_v with_o god_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o name_n and_o also_o with_o man_n in_o our_o deal_n with_o they_o we_o ought_v therefore_o to_o look_v well_o to_o the_o integrity_n of_o our_o heart_n 6._o heart_n psal_n 51._o 6._o for_o god_n will_v be_v well_o please_v if_o he_o find_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n though_o there_o may_v be_v weakness_n and_o fail_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o our_o duty_n to_o he_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n do_v commend_v nathanael_n because_o there_o be_v no_o guile_n find_v in_o he_o now_o look_v upon_o thy_o belove_a saviour_n for_o thy_o instruction_n and_o behold_v how_o meek_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n stand_v among_o those_o ravenous_a wolf_n who_o seek_v to_o devour_v he_o do_v not_o thy_o conscience_n tell_v thou_o that_o the_o guilt_n of_o thy_o sin_n be_v as_o fuel_n to_o kindle_v their_o rage_n and_o to_o maintain_v the_o fire_n of_o their_o fury_n against_o he_o be_v not_o thou_o some_o part_n of_o the_o occasion_n that_o he_o suffer_v such_o disgrace_n such_o ignominy_n and_o such_o blasphemous_a reproach_n as_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o if_o thy_o sin_n have_v no_o relation_n to_o christ_n in_o his_o suffering_n thou_o can_v have_v no_o benefit_n thereby_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o firm_o believe_v that_o the_o guilt_n of_o thy_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o suffer_v for_o thy_o sake_n as_o well_o as_o for_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n his_o righteousness_n can_v be_v impute_v to_o thou_o his_o suffering_n will_v profit_v thou_o nothing_o and_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o good_a assurance_n that_o thy_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o his_o blood_n ●_o blood_n ezech._n 18._o ●_o but_o thou_o have_v eat_v the_o sour_a grape_n and_o his_o tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n thou_o have_v commit_v the_o trespass_n and_o he_o have_v suffer_v the_o punishment_n that_o by_o his_o stripe_n thou_o may_v be_v heal_v wherefore_o thou_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v the_o remission_n of_o thy_o sin_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n but_o by_o faith_n in_o he_o if_o thou_o can_v apply_v he_o to_o thyself_o also_o without_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n can_v be_v turn_v away_o from_o thou_o and_o thou_o can_v not_o comfortable_o rest_v upon_o his_o promise_n for_o thy_o salvation_n christ_n do_v here_o teach_v thou_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n when_o thou_o be_v unjust_o accuse_v spiteful_o revile_v and_o shameful_o use_v he_o do_v also_o teach_v thou_o patience_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o trouble_n or_o in_o any_o necessity_n for_o he_o suffer_v far_o more_o in_o thy_o nature_n to_o be_v a_o example_n to_o thou_o of_o meekness_n and_o of_o patience_n and_o to_o sanctify_v all_o thy_o sorrow_n and_o suffering_n to_o thou_o wherefore_o let_v not_o thy_o love_n to_o he_o be_v abate_v because_o of_o his_o trouble_n but_o rather_o increase_v it_o the_o more_o because_o he_o suffer_v for_o thy_o sake_n and_o for_o thy_o good_a also_o let_v not_o thy_o confidence_n in_o he_o be_v weaken_v because_o he_o be_v now_o go_v to_o golgotha_n which_o be_v a_o uncomfortable_a place_n to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o be_v not_o thou_o dishearten_v if_o thou_o must_v go_v the_o same_o way_n and_o must_v follow_v he_o in_o the_o same_o step_n and_o to_o the_o same_o place_n for_o christ_n be_v go_v before_o to_o sanctify_v both_o the_o way_n and_o the_o place_n to_o thou_o and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o thy_o trouble_n and_o cross_n and_o therefore_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o go_v up_o after_o he_o to_o mount_n calvary_n thou_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o he_o wherefore_o labour_n for_o christian_a fortitude_n and_o a_o holy_a resolution_n that_o when_o trouble_n sorrow_n or_o calamity_n do_v come_v upon_o thou_o thy_o mind_n may_v not_o be_v dismay_v with_o fear_n nor_o thy_o heart_n faint_a with_o grief_n if_o thou_o must_v drink_v of_o these_o bitter_a water_n of_o affliction_n for_o his_o sake_n consider_v now_o 62._o now_o mar._n 14_o 62._o that_o jesus_n plain_o tell_v the_o high_a priest_n that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o power_n and_o come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n whereupon_o the_o indignation_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v such_o that_o he_o rend_v his_o clothh_n he_o accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o judge_v he_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o death_n his_o proud_a spirit_n can_v not_o endure_v to_o hear_v such_o great_a thing_n of_o so_o poor_a and_o silly_a a_o man_n as_o he_o conceive_v christ_n to_o be_v but_o he_o be_v transport_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o sound_a judgement_n with_o a_o kind_n of_o blind_a zeal_n or_o rather_o with_o furious_a hatred_n against_o christ_n for_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v his_o report_n though_o he_o have_v declare_v himself_o so_o plain_o to_o he_o according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 38_o prophet_n isa_n 53._o 1._o john_n 12._o 38_o lord_n who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n and_o to_o who_o have_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v reveal_v this_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n be_v at_o this_o very_a time_n fulfil_v for_o now_o he_o be_v bring_v into_o such_o trouble_n and_o into_o such_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n that_o none_o believe_v what_o the_o prophet_n have_v report_v of_o he_o or_o what_o he_o do_v speak_v of_o himself_o his_o divine_a power_n be_v cloud_v from_o they_o he_o be_v as_o a_o man_n not_o able_a to_o help_v himself_o and_o his_o own_o disciple_n stagger_v in_o their_o faith_n of_o he_o at_o this_o time_n this_o do_v often_o shake_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n when_o they_o see_v the_o rage_n of_o the_o wicked_a the_o peril_n and_o danger_n that_o do_v round_o beset_v they_o and_o no_o power_n appear_v to_o deliver_v they_o because_o god_n do_v not_o reveal_v the_o strength_n of_o his_o arm_n for_o their_o help_n and_o succour_v may_v we_o not_o now_o just_o admire_v at_o the_o incredulity_n that_o be_v in_o the_o high_a priest_n heart_n and_o at_o the_o blindness_n of_o his_o understanding_n who_o will_v neither_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n nor_o understand_v the_o ancient_a prophecy_n which_o he_o know_v be_v then_o to_o be_v fulfil_v concern_v the_o messiah_n that_o be_v promise_v which_o do_v exact_o agree_v with_o christ_n and_o can_v agree_v with_o no_o other_o but_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v fulfil_v in_o he_o 10._o he_o isa_n 6_o 9_o 10._o go_v and_o tell_v this_o people_n hear_v you_o indeed_o but_o understand_v not_o and_o see_v you_o indeed_o but_o perceive_v not_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o this_o people_n fat_a and_o make_v their_o 15._o ●at_a 13._o 14_o 15._o ear_n heavy_a and_o shut_v their_o eye_n lest_o they_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n &_o hear_v with_o their_o ear_n and_o understand_v with_o their_o heart_n and_o convert_v and_o be_v heal_v 13._o heal_v zecha_n 11._o 13._o the_o prophecy_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v sell_v for_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n and_o that_o a_o potter_n field_n shall_v be_v buy_v with_o that_o money_n be_v fulfil_v before_o his_o eye_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v also_o isaiahs_n prophecy_n of_o christ_n be_v fulfil_v at_o that_o very_a time_n 3._o time_n isa_n 53._o 3._o for_o than_o he_o be_v despise_v and_o reject_v of_o man_n they_o hide_v their_o face_n from_o he_o and_o esteem_v he_o not_o and_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a what_o great_a work_v christ_n have_v wrought_v and_o how_o powerful_a his_o preach_v be_v and_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v but_o rather_o this_o do_v increase_v his_o malice_n and_o fury_n against_o he_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n expect_v a_o temporal_a king_n to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o their_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_n
ignominy_n and_o such_o blasphemy_n to_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o and_o if_o he_o can_v not_o deliver_v himself_o than_o peter_n will_v bring_v himself_o into_o many_o peril_n and_o danger_n if_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n will_v use_v he_o far_o worse_o than_o they_o do_v his_o master_n also_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o some_o way_n or_o other_o offend_v though_o peter_n do_v not_o know_v it_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n will_v not_o be_v so_o cruel_o bend_v against_o he_o these_o or_o the_o like_a suggestion_n the_o devil_n do_v probable_o cast_v into_o peter_n mind_n to_o increase_v his_o fear_n to_o weaken_v his_o faith_n and_o to_o overthrow_v that_o confidence_n which_o he_o have_v in_o christ_n thus_o the_o sting_n of_o that_o old_a serpent_n go_v along_o with_o the_o word_n of_o a_o silly_a damosel_n which_o peter_n do_v not_o suspect_v and_o they_o enter_v so_o deep_a into_o he_o that_o they_o poison_v his_o heart_n with_o unbelief_n and_o make_v he_o to_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o jesus_n and_o also_o he_o begin_v to_o curse_v and_o swear_v that_o he_o know_v he_o not_o 32._o not_o luk._n 22_o 31_o 32._o though_o christ_n have_v tell_v he_o that_o satan_n desire_v to_o sift_v he_o as_o wheat_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v thrice_o deny_v he_o before_o the_o cock_n do_v crow_v which_o be_v to_o make_v he_o the_o more_o watchful_a over_o his_o word_n and_o the_o more_o careful_a of_o himself_o yet_o he_o do_v dangerous_o fall_v from_o his_o dear_a lord_n and_o master_n and_o he_o have_v not_o recover_v himself_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o his_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v for_o he_o know_v that_o peter_n be_v not_o able_a by_o his_o own_o power_n to_o withstand_v such_o a_o strong_a temptation_n but_o will_v be_v shameful_o foil_v in_o it_o though_o he_o be_v so_o confident_a of_o his_o own_o strength_n when_o peter_n be_v in_o this_o fearful_a condition_n by_o his_o great_a sin_n through_o the_o cunning_a of_o the_o devil_n christ_n do_v gracious_o look_v back_o upon_o he_o and_o touch_v his_o heart_n with_o his_o spirit_n 14._o spirit_n mark_n 14._o and_o make_v he_o remember_v the_o crow_n of_o the_o cock_n which_o be_v the_o token_n of_o remembrance_n that_o christ_n give_v he_o then_o peter_n know_v how_o heinous_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o then_o also_o he_o present_o go_v out_o from_o that_o wicked_a company_n to_o avoid_v further_a occasion_n of_o sin_v and_o weep_v bitter_o which_o be_v a_o true_a testimony_n of_o the_o sorrow_n of_o his_o heart_n because_o he_o have_v so_o gross_o deny_v his_o dear_a master_n here_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n if_o god_n do_v not_o still_o uphold_v we_o with_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n for_o our_o passion_n will_v overpower_v we_o our_o sin_n will_v prevail_v against_o we_o and_o every_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n will_v make_v we_o let_v go_v the_o anchor_n of_o our_o hope_n in_o god_n if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n prayer_n that_o our_o faith_n fail_v not_o in_o these_o our_o spiritual_a conflict_n here_o also_o we_o may_v see_v what_o deep_a impression_n sudden_a fear_n will_v sometime_o make_v in_o our_o heart_n for_o it_o will_v sink_v our_o spirit_n and_o take_v away_o all_o humane_a strength_n and_o courage_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o joseph_n brethren_n when_o they_o find_v their_o money_n in_o their_o sack_n mouth_n 28._o mouth_n gen._n 42._o 28._o for_o their_o heart_n fail_v and_o they_o be_v afraid_a the_o canaanite_n be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 25._o israel_n denr_n 11._o 25._o because_o the_o lord_n do_v lay_v the_o fear_n of_o they_o and_o the_o dread_n of_o they_o upon_o all_o the_o land_n sudden_a fear_n will_v also_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o as_o it_o wrought_v upon_o peter_n at_o this_o time_n this_o be_v a_o humane_a passion_n that_o all_o man_n be_v subject_a unto_o but_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o a_o watchful_a eye_n be_v the_o best_a preservative_n against_o it_o for_o as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v 5._o say_v psal_n 53._o 4_o 5._o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n be_v in_o great_a fear_n where_o no_o fear_n be_v because_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n lie_v upon_o their_o conscience_n here_o also_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o put_v his_o hook_n into_o such_o plausible_a and_o harmless_a bait_n as_o do_v give_v we_o no_o occasion_n to_o suspect_v any_o hurt_n or_o danger_n whereby_o we_o be_v easy_o bring_v under_o his_o power_n if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n to_o escape_v they_o wherefore_o we_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o stand_v continual_o upon_o our_o watch_n and_o to_o suspect_v our_o own_o strength_n and_o to_o be_v careful_a what_o we_o speak_v and_o what_o we_o hear_v what_o we_o do_v and_o what_o we_o see_v do_v what_o step_v we_o tread_v and_o what_o company_n we_o come_v into_o for_o there_o may_v be_v much_o danger_n where_o we_o see_v no_o appearance_n of_o it_o let_v peter_n example_n keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o our_o own_o strength_n lest_o god_n do_v permit_v the_o devil_n to_o winnow_v we_o as_o wheat_n that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o weak_a we_o ●re_n without_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o to_o make_v we_o afraid_a of_o fall_v into_o temptation_n this_o fear_n be_v not_o slavish_a but_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a and_o a_o true_a filial_a fear_n which_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o all_o occasion_n of_o sin_n whereby_o god_n may_v be_v dishonour_v and_o it_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o a_o holy_a care_n how_o to_o walk_v circumspect_o before_o god_n in_o all_o piety_n and_o godliness_n it_o will_v also_o restrain_v we_o from_o all_o sinful_a desire_n and_o put_v we_o forward_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o holy_a duty_n from_o hence_o also_o we_o may_v draw_v sweet_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n though_o the_o measure_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o other_o grace_n be_v but_o small_a for_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o leave_n and_o permission_n from_o god_n who_o will_v not_o give_v he_o power_n against_o we_o above_o our_o strength_n but_o will_v restrain_v he_o from_o effect_v that_o which_o his_o malicious_a will_n do_v intend_v and_o purpose_n for_o our_o hurt_n he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o sift_v we_o with_o his_o temptation_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n he_o may_v bring_v trouble_n and_o affliction_n upon_o we_o as_o he_o do_v upon_o job_n but_o he_o shall_v never_o overthrow_v our_o faith_n nor_o quite_o bereave_v we_o of_o hope_n for_o god_n will_v so_o order_v and_o dispose_v of_o our_o suffering_n that_o they_o shall_v procure_v our_o good_a either_o to_o purge_v we_o from_o some_o corruption_n that_o we_o cherish_v or_o else_o to_o make_v we_o keep_v more_o close_o to_o our_o god_n and_o this_o be_v our_o great_a comfort_n that_o christ_n have_v pray_v for_o we_o that_o our_o faith_n may_v hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n though_o the_o combat_n we_o fight_v be_v very_o difficult_a and_o dangerous_a and_o our_o strength_n very_o weak_a affliction_n and_o cross_n will_v try_v our_o patience_n scorn_n and_o reproach_n will_v try_v the_o meekness_n of_o our_o spirit_n want_v and_o penury_n will_v try_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n anguish_n of_o soul_n for_o sin_n will_v try_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o christ_n want_v of_o answer_n to_o our_o prayer_n will_v try_v the_o fervency_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o they_o and_o the_o fear_n of_o persecution_n or_o torment_n will_v try_v our_o constancy_n and_o perseverence_n in_o the_o truth_n if_o we_o find_v any_o grace_n weak_a in_o we_o christ_n will_v make_v it_o strong_a if_o we_o sue_v unto_o he_o for_o it_o by_o our_o faithful_a prayer_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n rest_v upon_o he_o that_o grace_n may_v plentifullie_o flow_v down_o to_o all_o that_o have_v interest_n in_o he_o by_o faith_n 2._o faith_n psal_n 13._o 3._o 2._o like_o the_o precious_a ointment_n that_o be_v pour_v upon_o aaron_n head_n which_o go_v down_o to_o the_o skirt_n of_o his_o garment_n if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n that_o we_o be_v daily_a subject_n to_o divers_a temptation_n which_o of_o ourselves_o we_o can_v neither_o prevent_v nor_o overcome_v we_o must_v then_o keep_v close_o to_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n and_o redeemer_n who_o only_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o they_o or_o preserve_v we_o in_o they_o 13._o they_o 1_o cor._n 30._o 13._o
and_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o will_v with_o the_o temptation_n also_o make_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o 244_o it_o psal_n 37._o 244_o though_o we_o fall_v we_o shall_v not_o be_v utter_o cast_v down_o for_o our_o lord_n christ_n hold_v we_o with_o his_o hand_n and_o he_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o again_o by_o true_a repentance_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n if_o the_o floodgate_n of_o sorrow_n be_v set_v open_a upon_o we_o if_o the_o fear_n of_o trouble_n or_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n do_v surprise_v we_o christ_n will_v stop_v those_o sloud-gate_n and_o will_v comfort_v we_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n or_o else_o he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o eye_n of_o faith_n not_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o with_o a_o sad_a and_o heavy_a heart_n but_o to_o look_v up_o above_o they_o to_o that_o celestial_a happiness_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o which_o no_o eye_n have_v see_v no_o tongue_n can_v express_v and_o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v and_o to_o wait_v patient_o for_o it_o until_o christ_n our_o ever_o bless_a redeemer_n shall_v reveal_v it_o to_o we_o which_o will_v be_v but_o in_o part_n in_o this_o life_n by_o faith_n but_o full_o and_o perfect_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v according_a to_o every_o man_n capacity_n also_o if_o the_o devil_n do_v aggravate_v our_o sin_n and_o ser_n they_o before_o we_o in_o a_o multiply_a glass_n to_o the_o break_n of_o our_o heart_n with_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o to_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o will_v make_v we_o shed_v many_o bitter_a tear_n for_o they_o as_o peter_n do_v than_o christ_n will_v look_v graciouslie_o upon_o we_o and_o will_v give_v we_o a_o double_a measure_n of_o true_a consolation_n by_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o they_o we_o may_v further_o learn_v instruction_n by_o peter_n fall_n that_o if_o we_o give_v way_n to_o any_o sin_n the_o devil_n will_v easy_o draw_v we_o unto_o high_a degree_n of_o sin_v as_o he_o do_v peter_n for_o at_o the_o first_o he_o do_v but_o simple_o deny_v christ_n than_o he_o deny_v he_o with_o a_o oath_n 74._o oath_n mat._n 26._o 74._o and_o at_o last_o he_o begin_v to_o curse_v and_o to_o swear_v that_o he_o know_v not_o the_o man_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v be_v very_o careful_a to_o nip_v sin_n in_o the_o bud_n lest_o it_o lay_v we_o open_v to_o the_o devil_n tyranny_n or_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n whereby_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o recover_v ourselves_o but_o rather_o we_o shall_v fall_v away_o more_o and_o more_o from_o god_n sin_n be_v a_o spiritual_a gangrene_n to_o the_o soul_n which_o will_v eat_v into_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o time_n cut_v off_o and_o kill_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o true_a repentance_n there_o be_v so_o much_o of_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n in_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n as_o that_o they_o sin_v daily_o and_o the_o devil_n be_v ready_a to_o take_v advantage_n upon_o every_o sin_n but_o he_o can_v easy_o fasten_v his_o sting_n upon_o their_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v not_o glue_v so_o fast_o to_o their_o heart_n but_o that_o they_o may_v easy_o remove_v they_o whereas_o his_o sting_n will_v soon_o take_v hold_n of_o any_o sin_n that_o be_v root_v in_o we_o either_o by_o custom_n or_o by_o delight_n to_o wound_v our_o soul_n even_o to_o the_o death_n if_o we_o sleight_v the_o least_o sin_n it_o will_v bring_v we_o on_o to_o great_a and_o if_o we_o be_v careless_a of_o small_a sin_n they_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o a_o custom_n of_o sin_v which_o will_v quick_o beget_v a_o habit_n of_o sin_n in_o we_o which_o be_v a_o fit_a ground_n for_o the_o devil_n to_o work_v upon_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o return_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o plunge_v we_o deep_o into_o the_o gulf_n of_o sin_n unless_o christ_n in_o his_o abundant_a mercy_n do_v touch_v our_o heart_n with_o his_o spirit_n to_o let_v we_o see_v from_o whence_o we_o be_v fall_v and_o do_v also_o give_v we_o grace_n to_o repent_v and_o return_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v keep_v a_o more_o diligent_a watch_n over_o ourselves_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v if_o we_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o in_o peter_n we_o shall_v see_v that_o we_o also_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o like_a delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n we_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o deny_v christ_n and_o to_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n as_o he_o be_v and_o the_o fear_n of_o trouble_n persecution_n or_o danger_n for_o christ_n will_v prevail_v as_o much_o with_o we_o as_o it_o do_v with_o he_o to_o make_v we_o renounce_v our_o profession_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o brink_n of_o perdition_n but_o christ_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o fall_v into_o that_o bottomless_a pit_n but_o will_v look_v upon_o we_o in_o mercy_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o peter_n the_o devil_n do_v delude_v peter_n with_o vain_a hope_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o shall_v escape_v the_o trouble_n and_o danger_n that_o may_v come_v upon_o he_o if_o it_o be_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n for_o thus_o he_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o ready_a way_n to_o lose_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n jesus_n christ_n and_o into_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o eternal_a destruction_n thus_o also_o do_v the_o devil_n delude_v we_o if_o we_o trust_v he_o for_o he_o will_v promise_v all_o worldly_a wealth_n and_o earthly_a pleasure_n and_o will_v give_v to_o some_o a_o large_a portion_n of_o they_o in_o part_n of_o payment_n but_o in_o the_o end_n he_o will_v pay_v they_o with_o wormwood_n and_o gall_n which_o will_v be_v more_o bitter_a to_o they_o than_o peter_n tear_n be_v unto_o he_o when_o we_o think_v ourselves_o most_o strong_a than_o we_o be_v soon_o overcome_v and_o when_o we_o presume_v most_o upon_o our_o own_o strength_n than_o we_o give_v the_o devil_n the_o great_a advantage_n against_o we_o in_o prosperity_n we_o think_v ourselves_o so_o strong_a that_o we_o can_v be_v shake_v we_o be_v then_o secure_a and_o able_a to_o stand_v unmoveable_a against_o any_o opposition_n 22._o opposition_n 1_o cor._n 10_o 22._o but_o let_v he_o that_o think_v he_o stand_v take_v heed_n lest_o he_o fall_v for_o alas_o we_o know_v not_o the_o wile_n of_o satan_n we_o can_v conceive_v how_o many_o way_n he_o have_v to_o deceive_v we_o what_o way_n shall_v we_o then_o take_v to_o escape_v these_o wile_n and_o deceit_n whereof_o the_o world_n be_v full_a by_o his_o mean_n there_o be_v a_o deceitful_a tongue_n against_o which_o david_n thus_o pray_v 1._o pray_v psal_n 120._o 1._o deliver_v my_o soul_n o_o lord_n from_o lie_v lip_n and_o from_o a_o deceitful_a tongue_n there_o be_v also_o a_o bag_n of_o deceitful_a weight_n which_o be_v always_o second_v with_o a_o false_a tongue_n as_o the_o lord_n speak_v by_o his_o prophet_n 12._o prophet_n mic._n 6._o 11_o 12._o shall_v i_o account_v they_o pure_a with_o the_o wicked_a balance_n and_o with_o the_o bag_n of_o deceitful_a weight_n for_o the_o rich_a man_n thereof_o be_v full_a of_o violence_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o have_v speak_v lie_v and_o their_o tongu●_n be_v deceitful_a in_o their_o mouth_n the_o wise_a man_n tell_v we_o 36._o we_o prov._n 14._o 36._o of_o a_o deceitful_a witness_n 6._o witness_n prov._n 23._o 6._o and_o that_o the_o dainty_n at_o a_o rich_a man_n table_n be_v deceitful_a meat_n because_o they_o will_v easy_o entice_v we_o to_o gluttony_n also_o 6._o also_o prov._n 27._o 6._o that_o the_o kiss_n of_o a_o enemy_n be_v deceitful_a for_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o false_a heart_n who_o can_v discover_v the_o deceitfulness_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n or_o the_o delusion_n of_o his_o own_o fancy_n every_o sinful_a lust_n and_o evil_a concupiscence_n do_v delude_v we_o the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o deceit_n to_o beguile_v we_o wicked_a man_n have_v their_o wile_n to_o vex_v the_o godly_a and_o such_o as_o be_v simple_a in_o heart_n 18._o heart_n num_fw-la 25._o 18._o as_o the_o midianite_n vex_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n with_o their_o wile_n wherewith_o they_o beguile_v they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o peor_n and_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o c●zby_n if_o we_o will_v be_v well_o fence_v from_o these_o delusion_n which_o come_v from_o the_o devil_n 11._o devil_n eph._n 6_o 11._o we_o must_v put_v on_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n ●nd_v then_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o they_o all_o this_o holy_a armour_n will_v
also_o defend_v we_o from_o all_o the_o delusion_n of_o worldly_a vanity_n and_o of_o our_o own_o sinful_a lust_n howsoever_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n or_o the_o devil_n shall_v tempt_v we_o for_o it_o will_v preserve_v and_o keep_v we_o from_o the_o evil_n of_o their_o temptation_n consider_v now_o that_o god_n who_o can_v bring_v good_a out_o of_o evil_a and_o can_v make_v all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o servant_n make_v peter_n fall_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o exceed_v great_a good_a unto_o he_o for_o thereby_o he_o do_v see_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o presumption_n also_o unsuspected_a danger_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o security_n he_o do_v see_v the_o malice_n and_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o make_v he_o more_o careful_a and_o watchful_a over_o himself_o and_o he_o be_v the_o better_a able_a by_o his_o own_o experience_n to_o comfort_n and_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n in_o their_o slip_n and_o fall_v but_o above_o all_o it_o make_v he_o love_n christ_n his_o dear_a lord_n with_o more_o int●re_a affection_n and_o to_o stick_v close_o unto_o he_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o to_o be_v more_o courageous_a in_o his_o cause_n thus_o god_n turn_v the_o evil_n which_o the_o devil_n intend_v for_o peter_n hurt_n and_o make_v it_o conduce_v to_o h●s_n great_a good_a and_o thus_o also_o will_v he_o turn_v away_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o sin_n and_o of_o our_o temptation_n and_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o sorrow_n and_o suffering_n and_o will_v make_v they_o advance_v his_o own_o glory_n and_o to_o be_v profitable_a to_o we_o if_o we_o can_v bathe_v our_o sin_n in_o our_o penitential_a tear_n as_o peter_n do_v now_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v more_o full_o how_o the_o devil_n go_v to_o work_v to_o make_v peter_n fall_v so_o fearful_o sure_o the_o instrument_n which_o he_o use_v be_v but_o the_o high_a priest_n servant_n the_o word_n which_o they_o speak_v to_o peter_n be_v of_o no_o great_a consequence_n they_o be_v neither_o threaten_n nor_o terrify_v which_o in_o themselves_o can_v not_o so_o much_o affright_v he_o neither_o be_v it_o only_o the_o sudden_a fear_n of_o danger_n or_o those_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n though_o they_o do_v work_n much_o upon_o he_o to_o make_v he_o doubt_v of_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n now_o he_o see_v he_o so_o contemptible_o use_v of_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n that_o make_v peter_n fall_v so_o dangerous_o for_o he_o be_v in_o more_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n but_o a_o little_a before_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o daunt_v but_o the_o devil_n know_v that_o peter_n be_v of_o a_o hot_a fiery_a spirit_n and_o violent_a in_o his_o passion_n which_o will_v easy_o make_v he_o say_v he_o know_v not_o what_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v chief_o work_v upon_o they_o which_o will_v transport_v he_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o his_o reason_n and_o understanding_n and_o also_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o grace_n and_o godliness_n all_o that_o go_v before_o be_v but_o as_o engine_n of_o war_n which_o he_o fit_v and_o prepated_a for_o this_o great_a battery_n by_o his_o suggestion_n he_o do_v undermine_v peter_n faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o christ_n to_o make_v way_n that_o fear_n may_v take_v the_o great_a hold_n upon_o he_o that_o so_o he_o may_v by_o degree_n bring_v he_o to_o such_o a_o height_n of_o passion_n as_o shall_v overpower_v his_o reason_n understanding_n faith_n and_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n that_o be_v in_o he_o and_o thus_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o deny_v to_o forswear_v and_o to_o abjure_v his_o dear_a saviour_n even_o with_o execration_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v now_o about_o the_o great_a work_n of_o man_n salvation_n when_o jesus_n be_v transfigure_v upon_o mount_n tabor_n 6._o tabor_n mar._n 9_o 6._o peter_n speak_v he_o wist_v not_o what_o for_o sudden_a fear_n carry_v he_o beside_o himself_o also_o when_o jesus_n show_v his_o disciple_n what_o he_o shall_v suffer_v at_o jerusalem_n 23._o jerusalem_n mat._n 16._o 21_o 22_o 23._o peter_n begin_v to_o rebuke_v he_o for_o it_o for_o he_o be_v carry_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o modesty_n and_o sobriety_n with_o a_o preposterous_a zeal_n and_o a_o secret_a pride_n which_o the_o devil_n do_v stir_v up_o in_o he_o thus_o be_v the_o violence_n of_o peter_n passion_n the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o his_o downfall_n because_o they_o do_v exceed_v moderation_n and_o be_v not_o regulate_v according_o the_o holy_a will_n of_o god_n thus_o also_o do_v the_o devil_n go_v to_o work_v with_o we_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o perditiou_n first_o he_o will_v set_v upon_o we_o with_o his_o subtle_a wile_n and_o delusion_n then_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o undermine_v our_o faith_n and_o trust_v in_o god_n by_o his_o evil_a suggestion_n and_o wicked_a stratagem_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o wait_v upon_o god_n for_o his_o help_n and_o succour_v in_o our_o distress_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o depend_v upon_o his_o providence_n for_o relief_n and_o comfort_n in_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o rest_v upon_o he_o and_o upon_o his_o mercy_n in_o christ_n for_o our_o salvation_n if_o all_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o confusion_n than_o he_o will_v assault_v we_o with_o fear_n and_o doubt_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o our_o conscience_n he_o will_v frighten_v we_o with_o trouble_n and_o danger_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n he_o will_v make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o all_o our_o affair_n that_o we_o may_v trust_v to_o our_o own_o wisdom_n with_o our_o god_n he_o will_v make_v we_o doubt_v of_o his_o power_n to_o deliver_v we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o strait_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n to_o make_v we_o trust_v to_o secondary_a mean_n without_o god_n or_o else_o to_o use_v unlawful_a mean_n for_o our_o safety_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o mercy_n and_o love_n of_o god_n when_o we_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o his_o rod_n or_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o spirit_n for_o our_o sin_n to_o make_v we_o think_v that_o god_n have_v forsake_v we_o that_o he_o have_v cast_v we_o out_o of_o his_o favour_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o comfort_n for_o we_o that_o so_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o into_o despair_n how_o be_v holy_a job_n terrify_v with_o these_o doubt_n and_o fear_n in_o his_o affliction_n 25._o job_n 7._o 13_o 25._o when_o his_o bed_n do_v not_o comfort_v he_o his_o couch_n do_v not_o ease_v his_o complaint_n and_o when_o his_o soul_n choose_v strangle_v and_o death_n rather_o than_o his_o life_n thus_o it_o be_v also_o 77._o also_o psal_n 77._o with_o asaph_n and_o other_o if_o all_o other_o mean_v fail_v than_o the_o devil_n will_v work_v upon_o our_o passion_n and_o personal_a infirmity_n and_o he_o will_v kindle_v such_o a_o fire_n there_o as_o will_v devour_v our_o reason_n and_o understanding_n as_o will_v mislead_v our_o zeal_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o will_v carry_v we_o beside_o ourselves_o and_o beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o piety_n and_o goodness_n if_o he_o meet_v with_o such_o man_n as_o will_v give_v way_n to_o their_o passion_n he_o will_v easy_o inflame_v they_o with_o fury_n and_o rage_n beyond_o all_o moderation_n or_o else_o he●_n will_v drive_v they_o down_o into_o discontent_n and_o despair_n which_o be_v very_o hardly_o recover_v but_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v discover_v and_o escape_v his_o wile_n and_o delusion_n by_o the_o power_n of_o grace_n we_o shall_v withstand_v his_o wicked_a suggestion_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n we_o shall_v stand_v upright_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o trouble_n and_o danger_n 20._o danger_n rom._n 1._o 1._o 20._o and_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o affliction_n cross_n and_o sorrow_n and_o it_o will_v confirm_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v find_v this_o of_o david_n to_o be_v true_a 5._o true_a psal_n 22._o 4_o 5._o they_o that_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v deliver_v out_o of_o all_o their_o trouble_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v confound_v 5._o confound_v 2_o kin._n 1●_n 5._o hezekiah_n be_v deliver_v from_o senacherib_n great_a army_n because_o he_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n if_o peter_n have_v trust_v in_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n christ_n jesus_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o have_v never_o fall_v so_o dangerous_o as_o he_o do_v faith_n will_v also_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n which_o will_v enable_v we_o to_o overpower_v and_o
suppress_v the_o violence_n of_o our_o passion_n though_o we_o be_v natural_o incline_v thereunto_o last_o faith_n will_v strengthen_v we_o against_o all_o doubt_n and_o distrust_n when_o god_n correction_n be_v upon_o we_o 7._o we_o heb._n 12._o 6_o 7._o for_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o chasten_v and_o he_o scourge_v every_o son_n who_o he_o receive_v if_o we_o endure_v chasten_v god_n deal_v with_o we_o as_o with_o son_n thus_o say_v eliphaz_n to_o job_n 17._o job_n job_n 5._o 17._o behold_v happy_a be_v the_o man_n who_o god_n correct_v therefore_o despise_v not_o thou_o the_o chasten_n of_o the_o almighty_a why_o then_o shall_v we_o mistrust_v the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n when_o we_o be_v under_o his_o visitation_n why_o do_v we_o not_o put_v more_o confidence_n in_o his_o power_n to_o defend_v we_o more_o trust_v in_o his_o care_n to_o preserve_v we_o and_o more_o hope_n in_o his_o promise_n to_o save_v and_o deliver_v we_o from_o our_o enemy_n and_o out_o of_o trouble_n and_o danger_n wherefore_o if_o we_o do_v pious_o meditate_v upon_o these_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a strengthen_n to_o our_o faith_n and_o exceed_v comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n in_o all_o our_o temptation_n sorrow_n and_o suffering_n consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o as_o christ_n appoint_v the_o crow_n of_o the_o cock_n to_o be_v peter_n remembrancer_n of_o his_o sin_n so_o likewise_o god_n in_o much_o mercy_n have_v many_o way_n to_o put_v we_o also_o in_o mind_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o call_v we_o to_o speedy_a repentance_n for_o they_o which_o we_o ought_v with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n to_o mark_v and_o observe_v if_o god_n do_v forbear_v and_o suffer_v we_o to_o go_v long_o unpunished_a for_o our_o offence_n 4._o offence_n rom._n 2._o 4._o his_o goodness_n herein_o shall_v lead_v we_o to_o repentance_n but_o if_o he_o do_v give_v we_o any_o check_n of_o conscience_n or_o lay_v any_o affliction_n upon_o we_o they_o be_v as_o so_o many_o warning_n to_o make_v we_o remember_v our_o sin_n with_o grief_n of_o heart_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o repent_v of_o they_o that_o we_o may_v escape_v the_o evil_n which_o otherwise_o our_o sin_n will_v bring_v upon_o we_o but_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v touch_v our_o heart_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n he_o will_v work_v with_o unresistible_a power_n to_o make_v we_o think_v upon_o our_o sin_n with_o godly_a sorrow_n with_o true_a contrition_n and_o compunction_n of_o spirit_n with_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o they_o he_o will_v make_v we_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v they_o before_o god_n and_o earnest_o to_o crave_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o they_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o it_o by_o our_o true_a and_o sound_a repentance_n but_o if_o we_o remember_v our_o former_a sin_n with_o delight_n and_o approbation_n we_o sin_v they_o over_o again_o and_o this_o remembrance_n be_v sinful_a and_o it_o proceed_v from_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o not_o from_o grace_n which_o will_v never_o bring_v we_o to_o forsake_v they_o or_o to_o repent_v of_o they_o when_o peter_n come_v to_o himself_o and_o remember_v his_o unthankfulness_n to_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o do_v see_v from_o whence_o he_o be_v fall_v he_o be_v wound_v to_o the_o very_a soul_n and_o present_o go_v out_o to_o seek_v a_o place_n where_o he_o may_v ease_v the_o grief_n of_o his_o heart_n with_o his_o bitter_a tear_n consider_v now_o with_o all_o pious_a devotion_n how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v and_o what_o advantage_n we_o give_v the_o devil_n if_o we_o reiterate_v any_o sin_n as_o namely_o swear_v lie_a uncleanness_n drunkenness_n sabbath-breaking_a or_o the_o like_a for_o it_o will_v fasten_v the_o guilt_n of_o that_o sin_n close_o to_o our_o soul_n which_o will_v not_o be_v remove_v without_o bitter_a tear_n but_o will_v press_v we_o down_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o destruction_n consider_v also_o that_o great_a and_o cry_a sin_n require_v loud_a cry_n deep_a sigh_n and_o groan_n and_o many_o tear_n which_o we_o can_v pour_v forth_o until_o we_o do_v abandon_v all_o our_o wicked_a and_o lewd_a companion_n and_o all_o former_a occasion_n that_o do_v entice_v or_o provoke_v we_o thereunto_o and_o until_o christ_n do_v look_v upon_o we_o and_o touch_v our_o heart_n with_o his_o spirit_n to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o he_o do_v take_v notice_n of_o they_o 13._o they_o 1_o cor._n 16._o 13._o we_o shall_v therefore_o watch_v and_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n that_o we_o depart_v not_o from_o christ_n but_o support_v our_o faith_n with_o steadfast_a hope_n and_o assurance_n that_o he_o will_v establish_v we_o with_o his_o free_a spirit_n never_o to_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o total_o and_o final_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v as_o sometime_o peter_n do_v that_o though_o thou_o shall_v die_v with_o christ_n yet_o thou_o will_v never_o deny_v he_o nor_o forsake_v he_o but_o do_v not_o trust_v too_o much_o to_o thou_o own_o strength_n though_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n for_o if_o christ_n do_v not_o uphold_v thy_o faith_n the_o power_n of_o satan_n temptation_n will_v prevail_v against_o thou_o thou_o own_o heart_n will_v deceive_v thou_o and_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v too_o cunning_a for_o thou_o 31._o thou_o ezech._n 33._o 31._o thou_o may_v honour_v christ_n with_o thy_o lip_n and_o yet_o in_o heart_n thou_o may_v deny_v he_o for_o if_o the_o power_n of_o a_o christian_a life_n go_v not_o along_o with_o thy_o outward_a profession_n thou_o do_v then_o dishonour_v his_o holy_a name_n do_v forsake_v he_o in_o thy_o heart_n if_o there_o be_v such_o unfaithfulnesse_n in_o thou_o to_o christ_n thy_o saviour_n and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o hypocrisy_n hide_v under_o a_o fair_a profession_n than_o every_o rumour_n of_o trouble_n or_o danger_n for_o christ_n every_o allure_a vanity_n and_o every_o delightful_a sin_n will_v make_v thou_o turn_v aside_o from_o he_o 57_o he_o psal_n 78._o 57_o like_o a_o deceitful_a bow_n because_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o well_o season_v with_o grace_n to_o make_v thou_o stand_v firm_a and_o steadfast_a unto_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o truth_n against_o all_o opposition_n if_o this_o be_v thy_o fidelity_n to_o thy_o saviour_n and_o if_o thou_o do_v repose_v so_o little_a confidence_n in_o he_o then_o sure_o he_o will_v not_o regard_v thou_o though_o thou_o do_v howl_v and_o call_v unto_o he_o day_n and_o night_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n or_o misery_n the_o lord_n complain_v of_o his_o own_o people_n 14_o people_n hos_fw-la 7._o 14_o that_o they_o have_v not_o cry_v unto_o he_o with_o their_o heart_n when_o they_o howl_v upon_o their_o bed_n for_o they_o do_v still_o rebel_n against_o he_o wherefore_o let_v there_o be_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n in_o thy_o heart_n that_o thy_o heart_n and_o thy_o tongue_n may_v go_v together_o in_o thy_o prayer_n in_o thy_o vow_n and_o in_o all_o thy_o service_n to_o god_n and_o man_n let_v thy_o heart_n and_o thy_o hand_n go_v together_o in_o thy_o alm_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o in_o all_o thy_o work_n of_o charity_n for_o if_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o faithful_a to_o god_n thy_o best_a service_n and_o duty_n can_v be_v accept_v also_o keep_v thy_o heart_n close_o knit_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o then_o he_o will_v cast_v a_o eye_n of_o mercy_n upon_o thou_o as_o he_o do_v upon_o peter_n if_o at_o any_o time_n through_o humane_a weakness_n or_o upon_o the_o violence_n of_o any_o passion_n or_o strong_a temptation_n thou_o shall_v fall_v away_o from_o he_o thy_o heart_n be_v that_o which_o christ_n require_v for_o thus_o he_o say_v by_o solomon_n my_o son_n give_v i_o thy_o heart_n 26._o i_o prov._n 23._o 26._o give_v not_o thy_o heart_n therefore_o to_o the_o pleasure_n and_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o to_o carnal_a lust_n and_o delight_n but_o only_o unto_o god_n now_o meditate_v serious_o upon_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o peter_n fall_n and_o thou_o will_v find_v thyself_o likewise_o subject_a to_o the_o like_a provocation_n and_o to_o the_o like_a frailty_n and_o fail_n and_o learn_v instruction_n thereby_o not_o to_o be_v secure_a because_o danger_n and_o temptation_n do_v every_o where_o attend_v thou_o and_o not_o to_o presume_v upon_o thy_o own_o strength_n for_o that_o will_v not_o preserve_v thou_o but_o labour_v to_o be_v well_o root_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o well_o ground_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o love_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o no_o spiritual_a enemy_n shall_v prevail_v against_o thou_o and_o the_o cunning_a stratagem_n of_o the_o devil_n shall_v not_o hurt_v thou_o no_o fear_n of_o peril_n and_o danger_n shall_v make_v thy_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o fail_v and_o no_o affliction_n or_o trouble_n shall_v
pain_n or_o trouble_v but_o will_v thou_o give_v so_o much_o way_n to_o thy_o passion_n as_o to_o dishonour_n god_n thereby_o be_v thy_o mind_n so_o much_o set_v upon_o vain_a pleasure_n as_o if_o no_o sorrow_n can_v come_v upon_o thou_o do_v christ_n bear_v his_o cross_n and_o do_v thou_o think_v to_o go_v free_a do_v thou_o not_o know_v o_o faint_a soul_n how_o to_o measure_v thy_o strength_n ●f_o thou_o do_v measure_v it_o by_o the_o common_a measure_n of_o mature_a thou_o will_v find_v it_o too_o weak_a to_o bear_v thou_o up_o against_o those_o cross_n affliction_n or_o temptation_n which_o thou_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v measure_v it_o by_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o thou_o will_v then_o perceive_v what_o strength_n thou_o have_v to_o bear_v the_o cross_n for_o thy_o strength_n lie_v not_o in_o the_o wealth_n or_o in_o the_o arm_n of_o flesh_n but_o in_o thy_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n if_o thou_o have_v but_o a_o little_a faith_n and_o a_o small_a measure_n of_o grace_n thou_o have_v then_o but_o little_a strength_n and_o courage_n to_o encounter_v with_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n with_o the_o trouble_n and_o vexation_n of_o this_o world_n and_o with_o the_o discomfort_n of_o sickness_n but_o be_v easy_o surprise_v with_o every_o temptation_n and_o sinful_a lust_n and_o as_o easy_o overwhelm_v when_o the_o wave_n of_o affliction_n come_v upon_o thou_o wherefore_o when_o thou_o be_v upon_o thy_o bed_n of_o sickness_n or_o in_o any_o distress_n and_o misery_n complain_v not_o of_o thy_o strength_n of_o body_n if_o that_o be_v weak_a and_o fail_v but_o look_v to_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o 18._o thou_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 18._o for_o grace_n may_v grow_v and_o increase_v though_o the_o strength_n of_o thy_o body_n do_v decay_v or_o be_v spend_v and_o grace_n will_v uphold_v thou_o from_o sink_v even_o in_o the_o bitter_a pang_n of_o death_n and_o it_o will_v make_v thou_o to_o hold_v on_o constant_a to_o the_o end_n in_o all_o thy_o suffering_n consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o christ_n have_v appoint_v his_o cross_n to_o be_v the_o badge_n of_o every_o true_a christian_a which_o he_o must_v wear_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n thus_o say_v christ_n 24._o christ_n mat._n 16_o 24._o if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o also_o paul_n say_v 22._o say_v act_n 14._o 22._o that_o through_o much_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n christ_n give_v this_o badge_n to_o some_o for_o the_o trial_n and_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o they_o that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o to_o other_o for_o their_o humiliation_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n for_o their_o sin_n he_o do_v exercise_n other_o under_o the_o cross_n to_o conform_v they_o unto_o himself_o in_o his_o suffering_n and_o to_o make_v they_o bear_v it_o content_o also_o he_o give_v this_o badge_n to_o some_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o security_n and_o to_o prevent_v their_o backslide_n from_o god_n for_o by_o these_o trial_n and_o affliction_n he_o do_v always_o intend_v the_o good_a of_o his_o servant_n and_o not_o their_o hurt_n where_o this_o mark_n be_v true_o imprint_v there_o will_v grace_n appear_v and_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o will_v break_v forth_o in_o their_o conformity_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o their_o faith_n and_o patience_n under_o affliction_n and_o in_o their_o rejoice_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o apostle_n joy_n 41_o joy_n act_n 5._o 41_o that_o they_o be_v count_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v shame_n and_o rebuke_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v paul_n glory_n 1_o glory_n gal._n 6._o 1_o for_o say_v he_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_n save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o unto_o the_o world_n for_o such_o be_v the_o tender_a and_o indulgent_a care_n of_o christ_n towards_o those_o that_o wear_v his_o livery_n that_o though_o they_o be_v put_v into_o the_o fine_v pot_n of_o affliction_n there_o to_o have_v their_o dross_n and_o corruption_n purge_v and_o refine_a yet_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o receive_v any_o detriment_n thereby_o but_o he_o will_v bring_v they_o forth_o pure_a gold_n than_o they_o be_v before_o wherefore_o learn_v to_o carry_v the_o cross_n of_o christ_n in_o thy_o heart_n expect_v it_o daily_o and_o resolve_v to_o bear_v it_o willing_o when_o god_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o lay_v it_o upon_o thou_o and_o then_o thou_o will_v not_o feel_v it_o so_o heavy_a as_o it_o be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n also_o imprint_v the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o thy_o mind_n thereby_o to_o mortify_v all_o thy_o worldly_a lust_n and_o sinful_a desire_n this_o cognizance_n will_v tell_v thou_o what_o inheritance_n thou_o have_v in_o christ_n if_o thou_o do_v due_o examine_v thy_o heart_n when_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n how_o thou_o have_v glorify_v god_n by_o thy_o faith_n and_o patience_n how_o much_o thou_o be_v refine_v from_o thy_o corruption_n how_o much_o near_o thou_o be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n in_o thy_o affection_n to_o love_v he_o to_o confide_v in_o he_o to_o delight_v in_o the_o sweet_a fruition_n of_o he_o and_o to_o meditate_v on_o his_o goodness_n and_o love_n to_o thou_o if_o thou_o can_v find_v such_o fruit_n of_o thy_o cross_n and_o that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o sorrow_n thou_o can_v say_v with_o holy_a job_n 1●_n job_n job_n 13._o 1●_n though_o he_o slay_v i_o yet_o will_v i_o trust_v in_o he_o then_o be_v confident_a that_o christ_n have_v set_v his_o own_o stamp_n upon_o thy_o heart_n he_o will_v know_v thou_o for_o his_o own_o he_o will_v hide_v thou_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o his_o wing_n he_o will_v provide_v for_o thou_o in_o all_o thy_o necessity_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o raise_v his_o stamp_n or_o the_o impression_n of_o it_o out_o of_o thy_o heart_n or_o to_o separate_v thou_o from_o christ_n mark_v further_o and_o consider_v it_o well_o that_o there_o be_v some_o that_o follow_v christ_n all_o that_o dolorous_a way_n to_o mount_n calvary_n who_o can_v not_o refrain_v from_o tear_n and_o 28._o u._fw-mi luk._n 23._o 27_o 28._o sorrowful_a sob_n but_o bewail_v he_o and_o lament_v when_o they_o see_v his_o doleful_a and_o sad_a condition_n and_o they_o be_v chief_o woman_n to_o who_o jesus_n turn_v say_v daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n weep_v not_o for_o i_o but_o weep_v for_o yourselves_o and_o for_o your_o child_n whereby_o he_o do_v gracious_o instruct_v they_o how_o to_o fix_v their_o mourning_n upon_o the_o right_a object_n that_o their_o tear_n may_v proceed_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o grace_n not_o to_o mourn_v for_o he_o because_o he_o do_v suffer_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v appoint_v by_o his_o heavenly_a father_n and_o he_o do_v bear_v it_o in_o obedience_n to_o his_o will_n also_o he_o do_v undertake_v no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v well_o able_a to_o undergo_v and_o no_o more_o can_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o than_o be_v decree_v in_o his_o father_n counsel_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n but_o christ_n will_v have_v they_o weep_v and_o mourn_v for_o their_o sin_n which_o bring_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o themselves_o and_o upon_o their_o child_n for_o there_o be_v grievous_a judgement_n which_o will_v short_o come_v upon_o they_o also_o christ_n do_v intimate_v to_o they_o that_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o child_n be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o suffer_v such_o contumely_n and_o so_o much_o cruelty_n both_o by_o the_o jew_n and_o by_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o punishment_n of_o they_o consider_v now_o that_o christ_n do_v give_v they_o two_o special_a reason_n why_o they_o shall_v weep_v and_o mourn_v for_o themselves_o and_o for_o their_o child_n first_o because_o of_o the_o great_a desolation_n and_o final_a destruction_n that_o be_v short_o after_o to_o come_v upon_o that_o famous_a and_o renown_a city_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n wherein_o they_o and_o their_o child_n shall_v suffer_v very_o great_a calamity_n therefore_o christ_n do_v tell_v they_o 29_o they_o lu._n 23._o 29_o that_o the_o day_n be_v come_v in_o which_o they_o shall_v say_v bless_a be_v the_o barren_a
blasphemous_a word_n and_o cruel_a torment_n upon_o the_o cross_n even_o to_o the_o pour_v out_o of_o his_o very_a heart_n blood_n to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v we_o from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o filth_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o suffer_v whatsoever_o the_o malice_n and_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n can_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o also_o that_o for_o the_o time_n his_o divine_a nature_n do_v refuse_v to_o minister_v comfort_n to_o his_o humanity_n in_o these_o his_o bitter_a torment_n what_o thankfulness_n then_o do_v we_o owe_v to_o our_o dear_a saviour_n for_o his_o wonderful_a love_n to_o we_o what_o can_v be_v too_o dear_a for_o he_o that_o do_v account_v nothing_o too_o dear_a for_o we_o what_o duty_n what_o reverence_n and_o fear_n do_v we_o owe_v unto_o he_o who_o have_v pay_v so_o great_a a_o price_n for_o our_o redemption_n our_o best_a expression_n of_o love_n and_o duty_n be_v no_o way_n answerable_a to_o that_o which_o christ_n have_v deserve_v and_o which_o we_o be_v sound_v to_o perform_v unto_o he_o yet_o if_o they_o come_v from_o a_o willing_a mind_n and_o from_o a_o sincere_a heart_n christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v accept_v they_o and_o out_o of_o his_o fullness_n will_v supply_v what_o be_v want_v in_o we_o and_o god_n will_v be_v well_o please_v with_o it_o for_o his_o sake_n here_o be_v much_o matter_n of_o heavenly_a comfort_n for_o we_o if_o our_o heart_n can_v devout_o meditate_v upon_o it_o and_o receive_v it_o our_o life_n may_v be_v full_a of_o misery_n and_o our_o heart_n full_a of_o sadness_n and_o perplexity_n our_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o apprehension_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o our_o spirit_n may_v be_v so_o cast_v down_o that_o we_o can_v raise_v they_o up_o towards_o heaven_n we_o may_v be_v press_v with_o trouble_n cross_n and_o sorrow_n beyond_o our_o strength_n and_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n may_v be_v so_o eclipse_v that_o we_o can_v see_v no_o token_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n to_o sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o our_o suffering_n and_o to_o support_v we_o under_o the_o pressure_n of_o they_o but_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o faint_v and_o to_o cast_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o relief_n and_o comfort_n 11._o comfort_n psal_n 42._o 11._o but_o for_o all_o this_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v our_o soul_n need_v not_o be_v disquiet_v within_o we_o for_o if_o we_o wait_v on_o god_n he_o will_v be_v our_o present_a help_n he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n and_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v we_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o countenance_n may_v be_v darken_v for_o a_o few_o hour_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o sun_n at_o this_o very_a same_o time_n 2._o time_n mal._n 4._o 2._o but_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n will_v again_o appear_v to_o we_o with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n then_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o we_o can_v look_v up_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n to_o our_o sweet_a saviour_n who_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o low_a degree_n of_o spiritual_a desertion_n in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n than_o we_o can_v be_v and_o yet_o he_o find_v a_o return_n of_o the_o gracious_a aspect_n of_o his_o father_n countenance_n towards_o he_o whereby_o he_o have_v sanctify_v and_o sweeten_v whatsoever_o can_v betide_v we_o to_o sink_v our_o spirit_n or_o to_o shake_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n if_o our_o ear_n be_v spiritual_o bore_v to_o hear_v those_o doleful_a and_o lamentable_a word_n which_o our_o saviour_n utter_v upon_o the_o cross_n when_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v up_o his_o spirit_n to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o yet_o apply_v they_o to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v then_o draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o they_o to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o to_o support_v our_o hope_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o his_o love_n that_o he_o will_v not_o bring_v we_o to_o so_o low_a a_o degree_n of_o spiritual_a desertion_n because_o our_o weakness_n will_v not_o bear_v so_o great_a a_o trial_n but_o will_v make_v we_o to_o hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n now_o learn_v o_o my_o sorrowful_a soul_n so_o to_o imprint_v the_o crucify_a of_o thy_o dear_a saviour_n in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n that_o thou_o may_v draw_v grace_n and_o virtue_n from_o thence_o to_o crucify_v all_o thy_o corruption_n and_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o thy_o flesh_n that_o thy_o affection_n may_v not_o be_v carry_v after_o worldly_a vanity_n that_o thy_o eye_n may_v not_o delight_v to_o gaze_v upon_o obscene_a spectacle_n that_o thy_o ear_n may_v be_v dull_a to_o unsavoury_a speech_n but_o swift_a to_o hear_v word_n that_o tend_v to_o edification_n and_o that_o thy_o tongue_n may_v have_v no_o motion_n to_o utter_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v dishonourable_a to_o god_n or_o hurtful_a to_o thy_o neighbour_n 14._o neighbour_n gal._n 6._o 14._o thus_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n crucify_v the_o world_n shall_v be_v crucify_v to_o thou_o and_o thou_o unto_o the_o world_n if_o thou_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v crucify_v for_o thou_o because_o it_o will_v dull_v the_o edge_n of_o thy_o affection_n to_o all_o earthly_a thing_n it_o will_v work_v in_o thou_o a_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o all_o sinful_a pleasure_n and_o thou_o will_v daily_o labour_v and_o 22._o and_o col._n 3._o 9_o eph._n 4._o 22._o strive_v to_o mortify_v the_o old_a man_n of_o sin_n that_o have_v have_v his_o habitation_n in_o thy_o bosom_n above_o these_o threescore_o year_n in_o thy_o first_o creation_n thou_o be_v a_o lovely_a creature_n belove_v of_o thy_o god_n without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n in_o soul_n or_o in_o body_n thou_o be_v beautify_v and_o adorn_v with_o all_o grace_n and_o holy_a virtue_n reverence_v and_o obey_v of_o all_o other_o creature_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o the_o celestial_a orb_n do_v cast_v no_o evil_a aspect_n upon_o thou_o but_o now_o thou_o be_v deform_v with_o sin_n thou_o be_v pollute_v in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o thy_o body_n for_o thou_o be_v spiritual_o blind_a naked_a and_o void_a of_o all_o goodness_n thou_o be_v deaf_a and_o dumb_a to_o heavenly_a thing_n thou_o be_v lame_a and_o impotent_a and_o can_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n also_o thou_o be_v so_o bend_v and_o bow_v to_o the_o earth_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o raise_v up_o thy_o heart_n towards_o heaven_n and_o so_o full_a of_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o infirmity_n that_o there_o be_v no_o sound_a part_n in_o thou_o but_o this_o be_v thy_o comfort_n o_o my_o soul_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o thy_o crucify_a redeemer_n which_o be_v spill_v upon_o the_o cross_n will_v take_v away_o all_o thy_o deformity_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v heal_v all_o thy_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o his_o righteousness_n will_v make_v thou_o lovely_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n by_o nature_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o deform_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n by_o our_o fall_n in_o adam_n and_o if_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o regain_v our_o first_o happiness_n in_o adam_n first_o innocency_n but_o by_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o our_o sin_n but_o by_o his_o blood_n then_o our_o chief_a care_n must_v be_v how_o to_o enjoy_v christ_n and_o how_o to_o have_v this_o great_a benefit_n by_o his_o blood_n if_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o he_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v enjoy_v he_o in_o his_o whole_a nature_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n we_o shall_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o grace_n he_o will_v work_v a_o new_a creation_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o a_o thorough_a change_n in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o no_o sin_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n for_o our_o condemnation_n for_o he_o will_v also_o nail_v the_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n to_o his_o cross_n upon_o which_o he_o shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n to_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o they_o all_o he_o will_v also_o take_v away_o the_o stain_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n and_o will_v put_v upon_o we_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n which_o will_v cover_v all_o our_o deformity_n and_o will_v make_v we_o amiable_a and_o lovely_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n our_o sin_n shall_v never_o be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n we_o be_v make_v able_a
and_o seek_v opportunity_n to_o betray_v he_o unto_o they_o then_o he_o stir_v up_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n against_o he_o who_o out_o of_o malice_n and_o envy_n do_v persecute_v he_o and_o false_o accuse_v he_o before_o herod_n and_o pilate_n because_o the_o people_n do_v so_o much_o resort_n unto_o he_o pilate_n condemn_v he_o out_o of_o fear_n and_o flattery_n to_o keep_v his_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o caesar_n and_o to_o please_v the_o people_n for_o he_o think_v he_o do_v it_o for_o caesar_n honour_n the_o soldier_n crucify_v he_o for_o a_o reward_n and_o to_o make_v a_o spoil_n of_o his_o garment_n thus_o they_o be_v all_o the_o devil_n instrument_n to_o put_v the_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n to_o a_o most_o shameful_a and_o cruel_a death_n for_o their_o own_o wicked_a end_n but_o god_n do_v over-rule_v they_o all_o by_o his_o gracious_a and_o wise_a providence_n and_o make_v all_o their_o purpose_n and_o action_n to_o serve_v for_o the_o further_a of_o his_o most_o love_a and_o merciful_a end_n which_o be_v decree_v from_o eternity_n from_o hence_o we_o may_v draw_v sweet_a meditation_n for_o our_o comfort_n upon_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o can_v and_o will_v over-rule_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o all_o wicked_a man_n and_o will_v so_o dispose_v of_o all_o their_o plot_n and_o device_n which_o they_o intend_v for_o the_o hurt_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o they_o shall_v all_o serve_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o their_o good_a he_o can_v frustrate_v their_o wicked_a intention_n and_o can_v bring_v about_o his_o own_o end_n to_o effect_v his_o own_o work_n by_o they_o god_n have_v this_o provident_a care_n of_o his_o people_n that_o whatsoever_o their_o enemy_n do_v malicious_o intend_v or_o devise_v against_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o nought_o or_o else_o he_o will_v make_v it_o serve_v for_o their_o advantage_n and_o gain_v though_o our_o enemy_n be_v as_o strong_a as_o ●●_o as_o 1_o sam._n ●●_o goliath_n be_v and_o though_o we_o be_v as_o unfit_a to_o encounter_v with_o they_o as_o david_n be_v to_o fight_v with_o that_o great_a giant_n yet_o if_o we_o put_v our_o confidence_n in_o god_n as_o david_n do_v and_o keep_v close_o unto_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n he_o will_v direct_v a_o stone_n to_o beat_v out_o their_o brain_n and_o though_o they_o be_v as_o cunning_a and_o as_o subtle_a 17_o subtle_a 2_o sam_n 17_o as_o achitophel_n be_v yet_o god_n can_v confound_v they_o in_o their_o own_o craft_n and_o policy_n mark_v now_o and_o consider_v it_o well_o how_o god_n in_o justice_n do_v revenge_v the_o treachery_n and_o cruelty_n that_o be_v use_v in_o betray_v and_o in_o murder_v of_o his_o dear_a and_o only_a son_n and_o how_o he_o bring_v their_o wickedness_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n for_o judas_n be_v give_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n 5_o mind_n mat._n 27_o 5_o and_o immediate_o after_o he_o hang_v himself_o god_n do_v severe_o punish_v the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o this_o most_o horrible_a fact_n and_o lay_v the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o his_o son_n upon_o they_o and_o upon_o their_o posterity_n which_o do_v still_o rest_n upon_o they_o because_o they_o do_v wilful_o without_o cause_n and_o out_o of_o malice_n shed_v it_o pilate_n also_o be_v soon_o after_o cast_v out_o of_o caesar_n favour_n and_o banish_v into_o france_n and_o the_o devil_n be_v hereby_o quite_o vanquish_v and_o overcome_v so_o that_o now_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o hurt_v the_o mean_a of_o god_n saint_n thus_o will_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o all_o those_o that_o have_v their_o hand_n stain_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o anoint_v once_o and_o with_o all_o such_o as_o be_v actor_n in_o any_o wicked_a design_n they_o may_v hide_v their_o counsel_n in_o the_o dark_a yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o god_n for_o he_o have_v a_o all-seeing_a eye_n to_o discover_v what_o they_o go_v about_o and_o he_o will_v bring_v the_o evil_a of_o their_o do_n upon_o themselves_o or_o upon_o their_o child_n wherefore_o have_v thou_o no_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o partake_v not_o with_o the_o wicked_a in_o their_o evil_a design_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n will_v cleave_v to_o thou_o and_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o go_v unpunished_a for_o if_o thou_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n thou_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o their_o punishment_n therefore_o 7._o therefore_o eph._n 5._o 6_o 7._o paul_n advise_v the_o ephesian_n not_o to_o be_v partaker_n with_o wicked_a man_n because_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n for_o their_o sin_n god_n call_v his_o people_n out_o of_o babylon_n say_v 4_o say_v 1_o rev._n 18._o 4_o come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n but_o it_o be_v a_o bless_a thing_n to_o partake_v with_o the_o child_n of_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n in_o all_o holy_a duty_n 7._o duty_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 5_o 7._o and_o in_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n because_o we_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o the_o consolation_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n thus_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n shall_v mutual_o join_v together_o in_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v also_o mutual_o have_v the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o those_o service_n here_o and_o also_o partake_v together_o with_o they_o of_o the_o glory_n that_o afterward_o shall_v be_v reveal_v of_o the_o penitent_a thief_n now_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v between_o two_o thief_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 12_o prophet_n isa_n 53._o 12_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o transgressor_n one_o of_o they_o have_v no_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n nor_o grief_n of_o heart_n for_o his_o offence_n but_o begin_v to_o rail_v upon_o christ_n to_o revile_v he_o and_o blasphemous_o to_o taunt_v he_o say_v 39_o say_v luk._n 23._o 39_o if_o thou_o be_v christ_n save_v thyself_o and_o we_o but_o the_o other_o be_v touch_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o a_o relent_a heart_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o do_v free_o confess_v that_o they_o two_o do_v just_o and_o deserve_o suffer_v death_n for_o their_o offence_n but_o he_o do_v justify_v our_o belove_a saviour_n for_o his_o blameless_a innocency_n and_o he_o rebuke_v his_o fellow_n say_v fear_v thou_o not_o god_n see_v thou_o be_v in_o the_o same_o condemnation_n then_o he_o turn_v to_o christ_n to_o implore_v his_o mercy_n and_o make_v this_o short_a and_o sweet_a prayer_n to_o he_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o shall_v come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n to_o who_o christ_n immediate_o give_v this_o gracious_a answer_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n sure_o these_o gracious_a word_n of_o christ_n do_v much_o mitigate_v and_o assuage_v the_o sorrow_n of_o his_o perplex_a mind_n and_o much_o ease_v the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o torment_n and_o this_o bless_a promise_n give_v he_o good_a assurance_n that_o after_o his_o present_a suffering_n and_o pain_n he_o shall_v enjoy_v rhe_n bless_a society_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o heavenly_a paradise_n for_o as_o faith_n wrought_v in_o his_o heart_n a_o true_a contrition_n to_o repentance_n and_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o make_v a_o good_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o vindicate_v the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o aspersion_n of_o his_o fellow_n malefactor_n and_o also_o to_o present_v his_o humble_a request_n unto_o christ_n his_o lord_n for_o some_o gracious_a remembrance_n of_o he_o so_o no_o doubt_n it_o seal_v such_o a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o future_a happiness_n to_o his_o sorrowful_a soul_n and_o wound_a conscience_n that_o he_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v the_o promise_n and_o faithful_o look_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o whereby_o his_o faint_a spirit_n be_v much_o comfort_v and_o the_o cruel_a torturing_n of_o his_o body_n which_o he_o suffer_v be_v sanctify_v and_o sweeten_v to_o he_o here_o set_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o free_a love_n and_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o poor_a sinner_n he_o choose_v who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o refuse_v his_o gift_n of_o grace_n be_v free_a his_o love_n and_o favour_n be_v not_o necessitate_v to_o any_o 2d_o any_o gen._n 25._o 2d_o there_o be_v twin_n in_o reb●ccas_n womb_n 13._o womb_n rom._n 9_o 13._o god_n love_v the_o one_o and_o he_o hate_v the_o other_o two_o man_n may_v be_v in_o one_o bed_n god_n may_v take_v the_o one_o and_o he_o may_v leave_v the_o
resurrection_n whereof_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n be_v but_o a_o shadow_n 1._o shadow_n psal_n 16._o 1._o 1._o this_o bless_a place_n be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n where_o we_o shall_v have_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o it_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n where_o there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o 6._o evermore_o exod._n 34._o 6._o thus_o be_v christ_n abundant_a in_o goodness_n and_o in_o truth_n if_o we_o have_v but_o little_a comfort_n in_o this_o short_a time_n of_o our_o life_n yet_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o our_o day_n we_o shall_v have_v fullness_n of_o joy_n in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n together_o with_o christ_n our_o saviour_n for_o evermore_o wherefore_o though_o this_o life_n be_v full_a of_o vexation_n and_o trouble_n the_o meditation_n and_o hope_n of_o heavenly_a happiness_n which_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v to_o all_o eternity_n will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o our_o momentany_a affliction_n and_o tribulation_n now_o comfort_n thyself_o o_o penitent_a sinner_n if_o thou_o be_v so_o cast_v down_o in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o thy_o sin_n that_o thou_o dare_v not_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n in_o regard_n of_o divine_a justice_n 13._o justice_n luk._n 18._o 13._o or_o lift_v up_o thy_o eye_n unto_o heaven_n with_o the_o poor_a publican_n to_o crave_v what_o thou_o want_v or_o desire_v because_o thou_o have_v just_o incur_v his_o high_a displeasure_n by_o thy_o manifold_a transgression_n yet_o be_v not_o dishearten_v faint_v not_o but_o come_v cheerful_o to_o christ_n with_o true_a faith_n and_o firm_a confidence_n to_o be_v receive_v for_o he_o will_v open_v a_o fountain_n to_o thou_o from_o whence_o all_o divine_a mercy_n flow_v and_o thou_o will_v find_v he_o always_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o accept_v of_o thou_o make_v thy_o condition_n therefore_o true_o know_v unto_o he_o put_v up_o thy_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n to_o he_o and_o though_o thou_o desire_v but_o a_o drop_n of_o comfort_n yet_o he_o will_v give_v thou_o abundant_a consolation_n in_o what_o thou_o suffer_v and_o much_o more_o than_o thou_o desire_v by_o the_o example_n of_o this_o malefactor_n we_o may_v draw_v holy_a meditation_n upon_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o true_a faith_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o comfort_n for_o it_o look_v beyond_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n and_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o nature_n it_o make_v we_o evident_o to_o apprehend_v that_o which_o our_o reason_n or_o natural_a capacity_n can_v show_v we_o and_o it_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v in_o hope_n even_o against_o hope_n that_o which_o be_v impossible_a to_o nature_n and_o incredible_a to_o humane_a reason_n this_o miserable_a sinner_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o confide_v in_o he_o for_o his_o salvation_n for_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o ever_o he_o hear_v his_o preach_n or_o see_v any_o of_o his_o miracle_n but_o he_o see_v he_o now_o ready_a to_o die_v a_o ignominious_a and_o curse_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o he_o hear_v he_o thus_o revile_v 39_o revile_v mat._n 27._o 39_o if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n also_o he_o hear_v he_o mock_v in_o this_o manner_n by_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n he_o save_v other_o himself_o he_o can_v save_v if_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n let_v he_o come_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n and_o we_o will_v believe_v in_o he_o he_o trust_v in_o god_n let_v he_o deliver_v he_o now_o if_o he_o will_v have_v he_o for_o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o these_o and_o the_o like_a blasphemous_a word_n be_v speak_v in_o derision_n against_o he_o which_o be_v sufficient_a in_o all_o reason_n to_o keep_v back_o this_o malefactor_n from_o trust_v in_o he_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v so_o work_v upon_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n that_o he_o have_v save_v other_o and_o therefore_o he_o can_v save_v he_o also_o which_o make_v he_o to_o apply_v himself_o to_o christ_n for_o comfort_n and_o for_o his_o salvation_n and_o in_o his_o address_n to_o he_o he_o come_v with_o all_o modesty_n and_o humble_a submission_n he_o give_v he_o all_o due_a honour_n and_o reverence_n as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v then_o able_a to_o express_v and_o then_o he_o make_v this_o humble_a suit_n and_o supplication_n to_o he_o and_o no_o soon_o be_v his_o request_n make_v but_o it_o be_v grant_v because_o christ_n do_v see_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o integriry_a in_o his_o expression_n we_o may_v observe_v from_o hence_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v work_v the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n either_o without_o mean_n or_o by_o contrary_a mean_n he_o do_v sometime_o work_v very_o strange_o upon_o the_o will_n and_o upon_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n for_o christ_n be_v now_o preach_v by_o his_o deadly_a foe_n out_o of_o scorn_n and_o mockery_n 15_o mockery_n phil._n 1_o 15_o as_o there_o be_v some_o in_o paul_n time_n that_o do_v preach_v christ_n even_o of_o envy_n and_o strife_n other_o of_o love_n and_o good_a will_n yet_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v so_o enlighten_v the_o understanding_n of_o this_o sinful_a man_n and_o do_v so_o work_v upon_o his_o will_n and_o so_o season_v his_o heart_n with_o save_v grace_n that_o he_o receive_v holy_a instruction_n thereby_o and_o what_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n do_v speak_v in_o his_o disgrace_n he_o do_v apply_v it_o to_o himself_o to_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o divinity_n which_o make_v he_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o by_o faith_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o his_o humiliation_n his_o faith_n make_v he_o rest_v upon_o christ_n and_o upon_o his_o promise_n above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n and_o contrary_a to_o all_o humane_a reason_n if_o he_o have_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o transfiguration_n upon_o mount_n tabor_n and_o if_o he_o have_v see_v some_o of_o his_o great_a miracle_n or_o have_v hear_v his_o divine_a doctrine_n and_o powerful_a preach_v his_o faith_n have_v not_o seem_v so_o great_a but_o now_o he_o do_v see_v he_o only_o upon_o mount_n calvary_n nail_v to_o his_o cross_n as_o the_o worst_a of_o malefactor_n be_v and_o reject_v of_o his_o own_o nation_n so_o that_o to_o the_o outward_a eye_n he_o appear_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pitiful_a spectacle_n of_o woeful_a misery_n and_o yet_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n do_v express_v a_o admirable_a faith_n in_o the_o pang_n of_o a_o cruel_a and_o violent_a death_n though_o his_o fault_n have_v be_v intolerable_a in_o his_o dissolute_a life_n for_o nothing_o but_o faith_n can_v move_v he_o to_o honour_n and_o reverence_n christ_n now_o he_o be_v in_o this_o sad_a condition_n and_o to_o sue_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v remember_v in_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o faith_n he_o do_v see_v in_o christ_n more_o than_o humane_a meekness_n and_o patience_n in_o his_o suffering_n undaunted_a courage_n above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n to_o go_v through_o with_o all_o constancy_n those_o torturing_n and_o torment_n which_o with_o all_o cruelty_n and_o malice_n be_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o do_v see_v some_o glimpse_n of_o divine_a mercy_n in_o he_o when_o he_o hear_v he_o pray_v so_o gracious_o for_o his_o persecutor_n and_o tormentor_n and_o for_o those_o that_o put_v he_o to_o death_n in_o the_o last_o place_n ponder_v well_o in_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o merciful_a answer_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o penitent_a malefactor_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n whereby_o he_o do_v show_v his_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n upon_o earth_n thus_o he_o say_v to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n 10._o palsy_n mar._n 2._o 5●_n 10._o son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o hereby_o also_o he_o do_v show_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o heaven_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n 18._o pleasure_n mat._n 28._o 18._o for_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n therefore_o he_o do_v assure_v this_o petitioner_n that_o though_o his_o body_n do_v now_o suffer_v the_o torment_n of_o a_o cruel_a death_n yet_o his_o soul_n shall_v live_v and_o present_o enjoy_v a_o most_o happy_a and_o bless_a condition_n in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o mansion_n of_o heaven_n to_o all_o eternity_n which_o place_n 2._o place_n john_n 14._o 2._o christ_n have_v prepare_v for_o his_o servant_n we_o shall_v meet_v with_o labour_n and_o toil_n trouble_n and_o cross_n in_o this_o
6●_n before_o i_o be_v afflict_v say_v he_o i_o go_v astray_o but_o now_o have_v i_o keep_v thy_o word_n also_o he_o say_v 4_o say_v psal_n 23._o 4_o thy_o rod_n and_o thy_o staff_n they_o comfort_v i_o and_o then_o he_o conclude_v thus_o 12_o thus_o psal_n 94._o 12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o thou_o chastene_v o_o lord_n this_o exhortation_n the_o wise_a man_n give_v 12._o give_v prov._n 3._o 11_o 12._o my_o son_n despise_v not_o the_o chasten_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o beweary_a of_o his_o correction_n for_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o correct_v even_o as_o a_o father_n the_o son_n in_o who_o he_o delight_v 11._o delight_v heb._n 12._o 11._o but_o no_o chasten_n for_o the_o present_a seem_v joyous_a but_o grievous_a nevertheless_o afterward_o it_o yield_v the_o peaceable_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v exercise_v thereby_o wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o measure_v the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o the_o outward_a blessing_n which_o we_o enjoy_v nor_o his_o displeasure_n by_o the_o cross_n which_o we_o suffer_v consider_v now_o that_o none_o can_v ever_o claim_v great_a privilege_n from_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n than_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o none_o be_v ever_o more_o to_o be_v honour_v upon_o earth_n than_o she_o for_o she_o do_v bear_v christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n in_o her_o bless_a womb_n who_o have_v the_o command_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o she_o enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o his_o sacred_a society_n many_o year_n and_o yet_o she_o have_v her_o care_n she_o have_v her_o sorrow_n her_o whole_a life_n be_v full_a of_o affliction_n want_n and_o necessity_n she_o be_v put_v to_o great_a extremity_n when_o christ_n be_v bear_v soon_o after_o she_o flee_v into_o egypt_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o her_o son_n life_n she_o lose_v he_o three_o day_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o at_o that_o time_n she_o seek_v he_o with_o a_o sorrowful_a heart_n but_o above_o all_o behold_v and_o see_v how_o her_o soul_n be_v now_o pierce_v through_o with_o grief_n for_o she_o must_v now_o lose_v his_o gracious_a company_n for_o ever_o she_o now_o behold_v he_o upon_o the_o cross_n she_o see_v how_o his_o tender_a body_n be_v rend_v and_o tear_v with_o the_o thorn_n and_o with_o the_o whip_n how_o his_o hand_n and_o foot_n be_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o notorious_a malefactor_n and_o she_o hear_v the_o revile_n and_o blasphemy_n that_o be_v utter_v against_o he_o in_o a_o most_o shameful_a &_o spiteful_a manner_n which_o be_v enough_o to_o break_v her_o sorrowful_a heart_n but_o especial_o she_o do_v see_v his_o very_a heart_n blood_n gush_v out_o of_o his_o side_n which_o be_v pierce_v with_o a_o spear_n this_o be_v the_o woeful_a and_o lamentable_a condition_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n at_o this_o time_n but_o christ_n give_v her_o inward_a comfort_n and_o strength_n of_o faith_n answerable_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o her_o sorrow_n which_o do_v uphold_v her_o heart_n from_o faint_a and_o her_o soul_n from_o sink_v this_o may_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o any_o of_o god_n servant_n they_o may_v be_v oppress_v and_o press_v down_o with_o temporal_a misery_n they_o may_v drink_v deep_a in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o they_o but_o yet_o they_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o they_o to_o hurt_v their_o soul_n for_o that_o be_v take_v away_o by_o these_o suffering_n of_o christ_n which_o make_v the_o burden_n of_o they_o more_o easy_a that_o they_o may_v bear_v it_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n when_o our_o affliction_n be_v thus_o sanctify_v we_o shall_v find_v the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n that_o come_v thereby_o to_o be_v very_o sweet_a and_o profitable_a so_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v good_a cause_n to_o rejoice_v under_o they_o for_o as_o our_o sorrow_n and_o suffering_n do_v abound_v so_o also_o grace_n shall_v superabound_v 5._o superabound_v 2_o cor._n 1._o 5._o and_o as_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n abound_v in_o we_o so_o our_o consolation_n also_o abound_v by_o christ_n consider_v yet_o further_o that_o as_o the_o holy_a virgin_n be_v continual_o exercise_v under_o the_o cross_n and_o have_v she_o share_v in_o common_a calamity_n so_o likewise_o she_o have_v her_o particular_a care_n of_o want_n and_o scarcity_n for_o her_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v but_o mean_a and_o her_o livelihood_n be_v but_o small_a therefore_o she_o be_v now_o like_a to_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o all_o comfort_n relief_n and_o succour_n but_o christ_n her_o belove_a son_n take_v care_n of_o she_o he_o provide_v as_o well_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o her_o body_n as_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o her_o soul_n and_o commend_v she_o to_o john_n his_o belove_a disciple_n 27._o disciple_n john_n 19_o 26_o 27._o woman_n say_v he_o to_o his_o mother_n behold_v thy_o son_n and_o to_o john_n he_o say_v behold_v thy_o mother_n and_o from_o that_o hour_n john_n take_v she_o unto_o his_o own_o home_n and_o provide_v for_o she_o during_o her_o life_n thus_o be_v the_o bless_a virgin_n train_v up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n to_o keep_v she_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n though_o she_o be_v honour_v and_o bless_v above_o all_o other_o woman_n and_o that_o her_o mind_n shall_v not_o be_v draw_v away_o after_o the_o pomp_n and_o vanitis_n of_o the_o world_n but_o still_o to_o bear_v christ_n in_o her_o heart_n as_o sometime_o she_o do_v bear_v he_o in_o her_o womb_n it_o be_v also_o to_o free_v she_o from_o all_o earthly_a care_n that_o the_o meditation_n of_o her_o heart_n may_v be_v always_o heavenly_a and_o that_o the_o desire_n of_o her_o soul_n may_v be_v to_o be_v with_o christ_n this_o care_n christ_n will_v have_v to_o provide_v whatsoever_o be_v needful_a for_o all_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o for_o he_o best_o know_v what_o be_v good_a for_o we_o and_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o want_v if_o we_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o he_o we_o need_v not_o cark_n and_o care_n for_o the_o transitory_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o godly_a we_o need_v not_o distrust_v the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n but_o we_o may_v confident_o rest_v upon_o christ_n for_o he_o will_v support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o will_v provide_v for_o we_o in_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n trouble_n and_o sorrow_n may_v come_v upon_o we_o loss_n of_o parent_n child_n or_o friend_n will_v come_v and_o casualty_n may_v happen_v in_o our_o estate_n which_o we_o will_v neither_o foresee_v nor_o prevent_v these_o and_o the_o like_a will_v embitter_v all_o the_o comfort_n and_o content_n that_o we_o can_v find_v in_o this_o world_n but_o if_o we_o belong_v unto_o christ_n we_o shall_v never_o lose_v he_o neither_o can_v any_o thing_n bereave_v we_o of_o the_o sweet_a consolation_n that_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o he_o this_o we_o may_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a that_o our_o cross_n and_o suffering_n in_o this_o life_n may_v be_v better_o for_o we_o then_o to_o enjoy_v all_o earthly_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n moses_n refuse_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o pharaoh_n daughter_n choose_v rather_o to_o 26._o ●_o heb._n 11._o 35_o 25_o 26._o suffer_v affliction_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n than_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o a_o season_n esteem_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n great_a riches_n than_o the_o treasure_n in_o egypt_n for_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n 12_o reward_n heb._n 12._o 12_o then_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n which_o hang_v down_o and_o the_o feeble_a knee_n let_v not_o outward_a cross_n or_o affliction_n too_o much_o seize_v upon_o thou_o but_o by_o faith_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n and_o raise_v up_o thy_o meditation_n to_o spiritual_a thing_n set_v the_o affection_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v which_o will_v make_v thy_o life_n comfortable_a here_o and_o will_v bring_v thou_o to_o reign_v eternal_o with_o he_o hereafter_o now_o we_o must_v learn_v how_o to_o draw_v true_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n from_o this_o eternal_a fountain_n of_o comfort_n when_o outward_a calamity_n or_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n do_v overpresse_v we_o our_o worldly_a preferment_n our_o natural_a endowment_n humane_a learning_n or_o common_a grace_n can_v reach_v this_o fountain_n the_o well_o be_v deep_a and_o nothing_o can_v reach_v it_o but_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o only_a bucket_n to_o draw_v this_o water_n of_o comfort_n from_o christ_n which_o will_v refresh_v
now_o break_v down_o which_o be_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_a and_o that_o christ_n be_v as_o free_o give_v to_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o and_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n be_v as_o effectual_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o gentile_a as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o jew_n if_o he_o be_v true_o receive_v by_o faith_n the_o vail_n be_v now_o rend_v the_o gentile_a have_v free_a access_n to_o the_o mercy-seat_n which_o do_v typify_v the_o throne_n of_o grace_n by_o christ_n long_o before_o this_o god_n do_v choose_v some_o to_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o namely_o eliez●r_a of_o damascus_n in_o abraham_n family_n rahab_n of_o jericho_n ruth_n the_o moabitesse_n and_o naaman_n the_o syrian_a with_o many_o more_o second_o god_n do_v hereby_o show_v that_o now_o there_o be_v a_o end_n put_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n because_o the_o true_a paschall_n lamb_n be_v slay_v of_o who_o these_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o type_n and_o shadow_n and_o that_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v now_o abrogate_a 23._o abrogate_a joh._n 4._o 22_o 23._o and_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n be_v not_o confine_v to_o jerusalem_n or_o to_o the_o temple_n but_o now_o god_n may_v be_v worship_v in_o any_o other_o place_n so_o that_o it_o be_v in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n three_o we_o may_v see_v the_o free_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o to_o the_o gentile_a 10._o gentile_a act_n 15._o 10._o for_o by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n he_o have_v case_v the_o jew_n of_o the_o great_a burden_n of_o ceremony_n which_o neither_o they_o nor_o their_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v by_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o he_o have_v bring_v the_o gentile_a within_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v admit_v he_o into_o the_o most_o holy_a place_n for_o the_o vail_n of_o the_o temple_n which_o before_o keep_v he_o out_o be_v now_o rend_v asunder_o god_n have_v also_o sanctify_v every_o place_n where_o he_o be_v true_o worship_v and_o serve_v with_o a_o pure_a and_o upright_a heart_n and_o have_v give_v we_o as_o great_a privilege_n in_o christ_n as_o he_o give_v to_o his_o ancient_a people_n the_o jew_n four_o by_o these_o miraculous_a sign_n and_o wonder_n god_n do_v convince_v his_o people_n of_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o of_o their_o wilful_a blindness_n who_o will_v not_o see_v the_o fulfil_n of_o their_o ancient_a prophecy_n in_o christ_n nor_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v that_o messiah_n which_o be_v promise_v though_o they_o can_v object_v nothing_o against_o it_o wherefore_o their_o heart_n do_v not_o relent_v for_o their_o great_a impiety_n but_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o stony_a rock_n be_v more_o sensible_a than_o they_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o harden_v in_o our_o sin_n and_o thus_o blind_v in_o our_o understanding_n it_o be_v a_o fearful_a sign_n that_o we_o be_v give_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n five_o we_o may_v hereby_o see_v how_o god_n make_v the_o senseless_a creature_n to_o honour_v his_o son_n at_o his_o death_n though_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n do_v most_o spiteful_o dishonour_v he_o in_o his_o life_n christ_n honour_v his_o father_n while_o he_o be_v live_v and_o his_o father_n honour_v he_o now_o he_o be_v dead_a by_o these_o great_a wonder_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o centurion_n and_o other_o who_o see_v what_o come_v to_o pass_v say_v 54._o say_v mat._n 27._o 54._o true_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n thus_o will_v god_n honour_v those_o that_o honour_v he_o by_o a_o virtuous_a and_o godly_a life_n or_o by_o their_o suffering_n in_o his_o cause_n for_o he_o will_v make_v their_o innocency_n to_o appear_v and_o will_v manifest_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o profession_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o own_o name_n and_o he_o will_v give_v they_o immortal_a glory_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v wherefore_o if_o thou_o be_v in_o place_n of_o authority_n honour_n god_n by_o execute_v judgement_n and_o justice_n without_o exception_n of_o person_n if_o thou_o be_v rich_a honour_v he_o in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o they_o and_o with_o work_n of_o mercy_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o needy_a if_o thou_o be_v poor_a be_v content_a with_o thy_o condition_n if_o thou_o have_v child_n honour_n god_n in_o their_o good_a education_n teach_v they_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o let_v thy_o virtuous_a life_n and_o good_a conversation_n be_v a_o example_n of_o piety_n to_o they_o also_o if_o thou_o have_v a_o family_n command_v thy_o child_n and_o servant_n to_o keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o walk_v in_o his_o statute_n and_o to_o do_v righteous_o that_o the_o lord_n may_v bring_v a_o blessing_n upon_o thou_o and_o upon_o thy_o house_n if_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n honour_n god_n with_o thy_o patience_n hope_v and_o confidence_n in_o he_o whatsoever_o thy_o condition_n be_v honour_v he_o with_o thy_o thankfulness_n six_o god_n do_v give_v we_o to_o understand_v by_o the_o tremble_a of_o the_o earth_n and_o by_o the_o rent_v of_o the_o rock_n how_o powerful_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v sometime_o work_v upon_o our_o heart_n at_o our_o first_o conversion_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o repentance_n 9_o repentance_n act_n 9_o as_o he_o do_v at_o the_o conversion_n of_o paul_n 16._o paul_n act_n 16._o and_o at_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jailor_n and_o of_o diverse_a other_o for_o though_o our_o heart_n be_v natural_o as_o stupid_a and_o dull_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a as_o a_o lump_n of_o earth_n yet_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v upon_o they_o with_o his_o almighty_a power_n he_o will_v make_v they_o quake_v and_o tremble_v and_o he_o will_v put_v a_o new_a principle_n of_o grace_n into_o they_o whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v into_o a_o gracious_a condition_n and_o their_o natural_a dull_a and_o stupid_a property_n shall_v be_v make_v active_a and_o ready_a for_o every_o holy_a duty_n and_o though_o our_o heart_n be_v by_o nature_n as_o hard_o as_o any_o stone_n and_o no_o way_n capable_a of_o any_o gracious_a and_o heavenly_a impression_n yet_o the_o spitit_fw-la of_o god_n will_v break_v they_o in_o piece_n and_o will_v mollify_v and_o soften_v every_o piece_n to_o make_v it_o tender_a and_o flexible_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o do_v find_v this_o dulness_n in_o thy_o understanding_n this_o earthly_a mindedness_n and_o this_o stupidity_n in_o thy_o affection_n that_o thou_o have_v no_o will_n to_o serve_v thy_o god_n also_o if_o there_o be_v such_o obduracy_n in_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o lament_v and_o mourn_v for_o thy_o sin_n and_o thy_o heart_n can_v melt_v into_o sigh_v and_o tear_n for_o thy_o transgression_n and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o unbelief_n in_o thou_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o apply_v any_o promise_n of_o mercy_n to_o thyself_o and_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n nor_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o thy_o sin_n upon_o thy_o repentance_n and_o turn_n unto_o god_n then_o make_v thy_o condition_n know_v to_o thy_o saviour_n christ_n in_o all_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n and_o he_o will_v put_v a_o holy_a light_n into_o thy_o understanding_n by_o his_o spirit_n he_o will_v sanctify_v thy_o affection_n and_o season_v they_o with_o grace_n he_o will_v take_v away_o thy_o hard_a heart_n of_o unbelief_n and_o will_v make_v it_o more_o sensible_a of_o thy_o miserable_a condition_n and_o will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v it_o for_o a_o deep_a impression_n of_o grace_n last_o god_n do_v show_v by_o the_o open_n of_o the_o grave_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_a resurrection_n of_o every_o man_n body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n when_o they_o must_v appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o flesh_n though_o our_o body_n be_v lock_v up_o in_o the_o grave_n for_o thousand_o of_o year_n and_o though_o their_o dust_n and_o ash_n be_v scatter_v abroad_o with_o the_o wind_n to_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o every_o grave_n shall_v be_v open_v and_o shall_v deliver_v up_o her_o dead_a and_o every_o grain_n of_o dust_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o that_o every_o man_n may_v have_v his_o own_o body_n to_o deliver_v up_o his_o account_n before_o the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o receive_v the_o just_a reward_n of_o their_o work_n the_o wicked_a to_o be_v thrust_v down_o with_o the_o devil_n into_o everlasting_a burn_n for_o their_o evil_a deed_n and_o for_o their_o unbelief_n but_o such_o as_o belong_v unto_o
a_o spiritual_a manner_n because_o christ_n will_v draw_v he_o to_o himself_o by_o his_o spirit_n thus_o be_v christ_n also_o present_a with_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n to_o assist_v and_o support_v we_o to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o in_o what_o condition_n soever_o we_o be_v there_o be_v the_o same_o relation_n by_o faith_n between_o christ_n and_o we_o as_o be_v between_o the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n and_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o bless_a relation_n by_o our_o heavenly_a meditation_n of_o he_o for_o then_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o be_v present_a with_o we_o to_o teach_v we_o some_o heavenly_a instruction_n for_o our_o edification_n which_o we_o ought_v careful_o to_o practice_n that_o he_o may_v be_v honour_v thereby_o there_o be_v no_o time_n or_o place_n but_o we_o may_v take_v occasion_n to_o meditate_v something_o on_o christ_n for_o the_o good_a and_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n either_o as_o he_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n or_o as_o he_o be_v our_o prophet_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o our_o high_a priest_n to_o present_v our_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n to_o god_n or_o our_o king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o his_o passion_n upon_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n he_o will_v show_v we_o how_o low_o he_o do_v humble_v himself_o to_o advance_v we_o and_o it_o will_v much_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n and_o also_o it_o will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o death_n and_o for_o the_o grave_n that_o we_o may_v as_o willing_o lie_v down_o in_o the_o grave_n where_o we_o shall_v rest_v in_o peace_n as_o we_o take_v our_o rest_n and_o sleep_v in_o our_o bed_n by_o these_o and_o the_o like_a meditation_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v enjoy_v his_o sacred_a society_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o feel_v true_a consolation_n thereby_o but_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o the_o exhortation_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v raise_v our_o affection_n up_o to_o the_o high_a heaven_n for_o there_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o then_o he_o will_v show_v we_o how_o victorious_o he_o triumph_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n and_o that_o he_o have_v subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o fear_v and_o reverence_v his_o sacred_a majesty_n to_o perform_v all_o dutiful_a obedience_n to_o his_o command_n and_o to_o submit_v to_o his_o rule_n and_o government_n and_o because_o he_o be_v our_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n we_o may_v come_v bold_o to_o he_o in_o all_o our_o want_n trouble_n and_o necessity_n also_o faithful_a prayer_n be_v another_o special_a mean_n to_o enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o happy_a relation_n and_o communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n whatsoever_o to_o give_v we_o comfort_v in_o all_o our_o distress_n strength_n of_o grace_n against_o temptation_n protection_n in_o all_o danger_n and_o deliverance_n out_o of_o all_o trouble_n if_o our_o prayer_n proceed_v from_o a_o faithful_a heart_n they_o can_v return_v without_o a_o blessing_n for_o they_o will_v open_v christ_n rich_a treasury_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v there_o we_o shall_v have_v so_o much_o of_o it_o as_o be_v good_a for_o we_o this_o kind_n of_o prayer_n will_v yet_o reach_v high_o for_o it_o will_v so_o prevail_v with_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v open_v his_o heart_n to_o we_o and_o conceal_v nothing_o from_o we_o that_o may_v conduce_v to_o a_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a life_n here_o and_o to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n hereafter_o if_o we_o daily_o converse_v thus_o with_o christ_n in_o our_o meditation_n and_o prayer_n we_o shall_v have_v our_o conversation_n with_o he_o in_o heaven_n though_o we_o live_v in_o a_o vale_n of_o misery_n here_o upon_o earth_n now_o then_o examine_v thyself_o what_o communion_n thou_o have_v have_v with_o thy_o dear_a saviour_n have_v he_o walk_v with_o thou_o in_o the_o field_n as_o he_o do_v with_o isaac_n in_o his_o meditation_n have_v he_o travel_v with_o thou_o in_o the_o way_n as_o he_o do_v with_o the_o two_o disciple_n as_o they_o go_v to_o emmaus_n go_v he_o into_o a_o strange_a land_n as_o he_o do_v with_o joseph_n into_o egypt_n or_o be_v he_o in_o prison_n with_o thou_o as_o he_o be_v with_o he_o and_o with_o the_o apostle_n have_v thou_o have_v his_o company_n in_o thy_o bedchamber_n or_o in_o thy_o closet_n as_o david_n have_v be_v he_o in_o the_o dungeon_n with_o thou_o as_o he_o be_v with_o the_o jeremiah_n have_v thou_o have_v his_o company_n when_o thou_o have_v be_v among_o spoiler_n as_o daniel_n have_v among_o the_o lion_n and_o as_o paul_n have_v when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o lion_n mouth_n and_o have_v he_o be_v with_o thou_o upon_o thy_o sickbed_n as_o he_o be_v with_o hezekiah_n then_o sure_o thou_o have_v receive_v some_o blessing_n from_o he_o than_o thou_o have_v learn_v holy_a instruction_n of_o he_o how_o to_o bear_v thy_o cross_n without_o murmur_v and_o how_o to_o endure_v thy_o suffering_n with_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n then_o also_o thou_o have_v learn_v how_o to_o pray_v zealous_o how_o to_o live_v pious_o how_o to_o fix_v thy_o trust_n and_o confidence_n on_o he_o and_o how_o to_o set_v thy_o affection_n upon_o he_o by_o the_o plentiful_a experience_n which_o thou_o have_v have_v of_o his_o goodness_n to_o thou_o that_o so_o thou_o may_v die_v in_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n examine_v thyself_o also_o what_o sin_n thou_o have_v kill_v and_o bury_v for_o if_o thou_o do_v leave_v thy_o sin_n because_o thou_o have_v not_o ability_n to_o continue_v still_o in_o they_o thy_o sin_n do_v leave_v thou_o but_o thou_o do_v not_o leave_v they_o and_o they_o be_v not_o bury_v with_o christ_n in_o his_o sepulchre_n for_o thou_o retaine_v still_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o with_o delight_n and_o approbation_n and_o if_o thou_o have_v ability_n and_o opportunity_n thou_o will_v be_v as_o vicious_a still_o as_o ever_o thou_o be_v before_o for_o unless_o faith_n have_v seal_v thy_o union_n with_o christ_n thou_o can_v have_v no_o power_n from_o his_o death_n to_o mortify_v thy_o corruption_n or_o to_o bury_v thy_o sin_n with_o he_o neither_o can_v thou_o live_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n consider_v in_o the_o last_o place_n what_o subtle_a policy_n be_v use_v to_o make_v the_o sepulchre_n sure_a that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v steal_v away_o and_o to_o prevent_v his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a for_o they_o seal_v the_o stone_n and_o set_v a_o watch_n about_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o god_n do_v hereby_o make_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n the_o more_o evident_a to_o the_o great_a comfort_n of_o his_o child_n and_o servant_n but_o to_o the_o perpetual_a shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o of_o such_o as_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o god_n decree_n must_v stand_v and_o nothing_o can_v prevail_v to_o frustrate_v his_o determinate_a council_n whatsoever_o wicked_a man_n do_v vain_o imagine_v or_o contrive_v god_n will_v bring_v to_o pass_v what_o he_o have_v decree_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n this_o be_v great_a comfort_n to_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n that_o be_v under_o tyrannical_a pressure_n and_o can_v see_v no_o mean_n how_o to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o their_o slavery_n for_o god_n will_v bring_v about_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o will_v be_v honour_v in_o their_o deliverance_n to_o the_o shame_n and_o rebuke_v of_o all_o their_o enemy_n consider_v also_o that_o those_o malicious_a jew_n can_v not_o but_o be_v convince_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o those_o strange_a wonder_n which_o they_o see_v at_o his_o death_n and_o yet_o they_o still_o spit_v out_o their_o blasphemy_n against_o he_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o pilate_n they_o term_v he_o a_o deceiver_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o wicked_a man_n when_o they_o be_v give_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n for_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o their_o wickedness_n against_o god_n and_o no_o end_n of_o their_o malicious_a and_o mischievous_a practice_n against_o his_o servant_n and_o against_o all_o that_o profess_v his_o name_n a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o humiliation_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n from_o eternity_n where_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o fullness_n of_o majesty_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o have_v the_o dominion_n and_o power_n over_o all_o thing_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n but_o when_o he_o be_v to_o undertake_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n
up_o thy_o spirit_n thou_o faint_a soul_n for_o christ_n have_v redeem_v thy_o body_n from_o the_o grave_n and_o thy_o soul_n from_o death_n by_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v conquer_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n sin_n have_v no_o condemn_a power_n over_o thou_o death_n be_v advantage_n to_o thou_o hell_n be_v lock_v up_o from_o thou_o and_o the_o devil_n himself_o can_v go_v beyond_o his_o commission_n for_o thy_o hurt_n though_o the_o world_n do_v frown_v upon_o thou_o 33_o thou_o joh._n 16._o 33_o and_o thou_o find_v tribulation_n here_o yet_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n and_o lift_v up_o thy_o head_n for_o christ_n have_v overcome_v the_o world_n and_o he_o will_v sanctify_v all_o thy_o tribulation_n to_o thou_o thou_o live_v here_o subject_a to_o shame_n and_o reproach_n to_o disease_n of_o body_n and_o sorrow_n of_o spirit_n and_o to_o all_o misery_n and_o calamity_n but_o death_n will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o thy_o labour_n and_o travel_n the_o grave_n will_v refine_v thy_o body_n from_o all_o imperfection_n and_o disease_n and_o thy_o resurrection_n will_v bring_v thou_o to_o thy_o reward_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o thou_o in_o heaven_n if_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n set_v themselves_o in_o array_n against_o thou_o if_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n assault_v thou_o fear_v not_o but_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o thy_o saviour_n by_o faith_n he_o have_v overcome_v they_o all_o and_o will_v also_o subdue_v they_o unto_o thou_o 30._o thou_o eph_n ●_o 30._o if_o thou_o be_v a_o member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n thou_o must_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o he_o as_o to_o thy_o head_n as_o well_o in_o his_o glory_n as_o in_o his_o shame_n as_o well_o in_o his_o resurrection_n as_o in_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n if_o the_o cross_n must_v try_v thy_o strength_n he_o will_v not_o tire_v thou_o with_o a_o great_a burden_n than_o thou_o be_v well_o able_a to_o bear_v if_o pain_n or_o sickness_n bring_v thou_o near_o unto_o death_n the_o faithful_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n will_v great_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n for_o though_o thy_o soul_n must_v be_v part_v from_o thy_o body_n yet_o neither_o thy_o soul_n nor_o thy_o body_n shall_v be_v part_v fuom_n christ_n but_o thou_o shall_v rise_v again_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n with_o a_o spiritual_a and_o immortal_a body_n to_o be_v join_v unto_o christ_n thy_o head_n for_o ever_o now_o think_v on_o these_o thing_n with_o holy_a affection_n and_o they_o will_v minister_v heavenly_a comfort_n to_o thy_o soul_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o any_o perplexity_n of_o mind_n or_o body_n consider_v now_o to_o who_o christ_n appear_v after_o his_o resurrection_n it_o be_v first_o to_o holy_a woman_n who_o in_o their_o pious_a devotion_n and_o love_n to_o he_o come_v to_o embalm_v his_o body_n with_o spice_n and_o sweet_a odour_n then_o he_o appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o also_o to_o many_o brethren_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v well_o confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o of_o his_o deity_n to_o comfort_v they_o in_o their_o sorrow_n to_o uphold_v they_o in_o their_o suffering_n to_o strengthen_v their_o faith_n against_o all_o persecution_n and_o bloody_a trial_n and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o strengthen_v other_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n thus_o do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n testfiie_v that_o they_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n after_o he_o be_v rise_v to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n of_o his_o resurrection_n but_o christ_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o any_o wicked_a or_o ungodly_a man_n for_o they_o can_v neither_o believe_v it_o nor_o understand_v it_o nor_o receive_v any_o comfort_n or_o benefit_n by_o it_o because_o they_o have_v no_o spiritual_a eye_n to_o discern_v his_o glorify_a body_n but_o chief_o because_o they_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o he_o as_o their_o saviour_n christ_n do_v appear_v to_o we_o at_o this_o day_n by_o his_o spirit_n when_o he_o do_v manifest_a to_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o word_n and_o do_v give_v we_o grace_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n but_o chief_o christ_n do_v appear_v to_o we_o when_o by_o faith_n we_o draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o his_o resurrection_n to_o rise_v from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n when_o we_o can_v raise_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n from_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a care_n to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o when_o we_o can_v with_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n mount_v up_o above_o the_o sinful_a delight_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n and_o above_o all_o the_o calamity_n and_o tribulation_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o here_o upon_o earth_n to_o have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n and_o can_v draw_v comfort_n to_o ourselves_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o misery_n from_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o resurrection_n there_o will_v also_o be_v a_o day_n of_o resurrection_n to_o the_o wicked_a which_o will_v be_v most_o sad_a woeful_a and_o miserable_a to_o they_o for_o they_o shall_v not_o rise_v with_o purify_a and_o glorify_a body_n but_o with_o filthy_a ugly_a and_o unclean_a body_n all_o besmear_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o will_v make_v they_o odious_a to_o look_v upon_o and_o they_o have_v no_o cover_n to_o hide_v their_o sin_n but_o only_o the_o devil_n liverey_n which_o be_v a_o guilty_a conscience_n that_o they_o may_v be_v know_v to_o who_o they_o belong_v for_o there_o be_v no_o place_n and_o no_o inheritance_n in_o heaven_n for_o such_o unclean_a monster_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v thrust_v down_o into_o the_o low_a hell_n to_o partake_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n in_o their_o everlasting_a torment_n which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o all_o wicked_a man_n for_o their_o evil_a work_n of_o christ_n ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n when_o christ_n have_v full_o instruct_v his_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o have_v teach_v they_o how_o to_o plant_v his_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n he_o be_v take_v up_o in_o the_o sight_n and_o view_v of_o they_o all_o and_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o fullness_n of_o majesty_n and_o glory_n until_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a whereby_o christ_n be_v now_o become_v our_o eternal_a advocate_n with_o the_o father_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o he_o be_v also_o our_o eternal_a high_a priest_n to_o present_v our_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n to_o god_n at_o his_o ascension_n he_o carry_v up_o our_o humane_a nature_n with_o he_o into_o heaven_n and_o have_v advance_v it_o above_o the_o angel_n and_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n also_o christ_n have_v take_v possession_n of_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v for_o he_o keep_v it_o for_o we_o wherefore_o now_o let_v the_o thought_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v raise_v up_o in_o our_o holy_a meditation_n to_o contemplate_v the_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o christ_n now_o he_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n that_o we_o may_v firm_o confide_v in_o he_o and_o have_v a_o long_a desire_n to_o be_v with_o he_o to_o enjoy_v that_o place_n of_o true_a blessedness_n 2_o blessedness_n john_n 14._o 2_o which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o in_o his_o father_n house_n also_o let_v all_o our_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n proceed_v from_o a_o upright_a and_o a_o believe_a heart_n that_o they_o may_v be_v such_o as_o christ_n will_v present_v to_o his_o father_n for_o we_o and_o then_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v gracious_o receive_v they_o here_o be_v also_o great_a comfort_n for_o we_o that_o though_o we_o sin_v daily_o through_o humane_a frailty_n or_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n 2._o nature_n 1_o john_n 2._o 1_o 2._o that_o we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n who_o will_v intercede_v for_o we_o and_o will_v present_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n unto_o he_o in_o full_a satisfaction_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n whereof_o we_o may_v have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n if_o we_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n and_o such_o a_o advocate_n in_o heaven_n why_o do_v we_o give_v ourselves_o liberty_n in_o sin_n to_o displease_v he_o why_o do_v we_o cherish_v any_o darling_n sin_n
the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n may_v season_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o walk_v before_o he_o in_o holiness_n and_o pureness_n of_o live_v all_o our_o day_n wherefore_o now_o our_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n which_o be_v part_n of_o this_o curse_n be_v sanctify_v to_o we_o and_o make_v salubrious_a and_o wholesome_a for_o our_o good_a and_o the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n which_o we_o suffer_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o be_v change_v into_o fatherly_a chastisement_n to_o correct_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v walk_v more_o obedient_o before_o god_n or_o else_o they_o be_v to_o try_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o grace_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n that_o give_v they_o four_o this_o be_v another_o great_a advantage_n and_o gain_n that_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n which_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v find_v that_o he_o have_v also_o free_v we_o from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n for_o though_o sin_n will_v dwell_v with_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n yet_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o sin_n be_v weaken_v and_o kill_v by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o by_o his_o death_n the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n do_v often_o complain_v how_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n in_o they_o do_v sometime_o prevail_v against_o the_o spirit_n which_o make_v they_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o corruption_n as_o holy_a david_n and_o other_o have_v do_v paul_n also_o find_v this_o to_o be_v true_a for_o thus_o he_o say_v 19_o say_v rom._n 7._o 18_o 19_o i_o know_v that_o in_o i_o that_o be_v in_o my_o flesh_n dwell_v no_o good_a thing_n for_o to_o will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o but_o how_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a i_o find_v not_o for_o the_o good_a that_o i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v and_o he_o have_v no_o power_n but_o only_o from_o christ_n to_o be_v free_v from_o this_o dominion_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o cry_v out_o say_v 25._o say_v rom_n 7._o 24_o 25._o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n i_o thank_v god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n for_o he_o find_v this_o benefit_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n for_o say_v he_o 21._o he_o phil._n 1._o 21._o to_o i_o to_o live_v be_v christ_n and_o to_o die_v be_v gain_v or_o else_o we_o may_v read_v it_o thus_o for_o christ_n be_v to_o i_o both_o in_o life_n and_o in_o death_n advantage_n this_o be_v not_o the_o gain_n which_o natural_a man_n look_v for_o they_o seek_v after_o the_o gain_n of_o riches_n the_o gain_n of_o honour_n and_o the_o gain_n of_o worldly_a preferment_n they_o look_v not_o after_o spiritual_a gain_n they_o do_v not_o esteem_v of_o virtue_n and_o godliness_n piety_n towards_o god_n be_v out_o of_o request_n with_o they_o though_o it_o be_v the_o true_a gain_n and_o most_o to_o be_v desire_v five_o that_o we_o may_v get_v this_o spiritual_a gain_n of_o godliness_n which_o be_v the_o advantage_n only_o of_o a_o true_a believer_n christ_n do_v wash_v we_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o therefore_o he_o bestow_v all_o sanctify_a and_o save_v grace_n upon_o we_o to_o purify_v we_o from_o the_o silth_n and_o pollution_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o christ_n do_v unite_v we_o unto_o himself_o by_o faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v clothe_v with_o his_o righteousness_n and_o have_v all_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n then_o faith_n draw_v in_o with_o it_o all_o other_o sanctify_a grace_n to_o make_v we_o complete_a and_o perfect_a in_o christ_n to_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v our_o soul_n that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o virtuous_a and_o pious_a life_n in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o true_a holiness_n 2_o holiness_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 2_o christ_n do_v also_o give_v we_o a_o holy_a desire_n to_o the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o 18._o in_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 18._o grace_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n 24_o god_n rom._n 3._o 24_o by_o who_o grace_n &_o love_n we_o be_v free_o justify_v through_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n 8._o christ_n eph._n 2._o 8._o by_o who_o free_a grace_n also_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n in_o christ_n save_v grace_n be_v one_o of_o the_o special_a gift_n that_o christ_n give_v after_o his_o ascension_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 7._o paul_n eph._n 4._o 7._o but_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n 9_o christ_n heb._n 13_o 9_o wherefore_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v establish_v with_o the_o grace_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v carry_v about_o with_o diverse_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n but_o we_o shall_v stand_v firm_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v purge_v from_o dead_a work_n six_o we_o have_v this_o great_a advantage_n by_o christ_n above_o all_o other_o man_n 7._o man_n gal._n 4._o 5_o 6_o 7._o that_o by_o he_o we_o receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o thereby_o we_o enjoy_v all_o the_o privilege_n that_o belong_v to_o son_n for_o god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n and_o we_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n wherefore_o 16._o wherefore_o heb._n 4._o 16._o in_o he_o we_o may_v come_v bold_o unto_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n by_o prayer_n that_o we_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n for_o god_n will_v have_v a_o fatherly_a care_n of_o we_o to_o protect_v we_o in_o all_o danger_n to_o provide_v whatsoever_o be_v good_a for_o we_o and_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o distress_n 4._o distress_n psal_n 9_o 9_o isa_n 25._o 4._o thus_o be_v god_n a_o refuge_n and_o a_o shield_n of_o defence_n to_o david_n and_o to_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o their_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n if_o his_o rod_n of_o correction_n be_v upon_o we_o it_o will_v be_v in_o love_n 6._o love_n heb._n 12._o 6._o as_o a_o father_n chasten_v his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v we_o as_o his_o son_n and_o though_o we_o feel_v his_o visitation_n sharp_a 31_o sharp_a lam._n 3._o 31_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o cast_v we_o off_o for_o ever_o for_o 30._o for_o eph._n 4_o 30._o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n 12._o redemption_n heb._n 6._o 12._o that_o we_o may_v through_o faith_n and_o patience_n inherit_v the_o promise_n 4._o promise_n 1_o pet._n 1_o 4._o as_o heir_n to_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o last_o christ_n have_v seal_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o we_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n whereby_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o strict_a keep_n of_o the_o legal_a covenant_n of_o work_n and_o christ_n will_v perfect_v with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n whatsoever_o be_v want_v in_o we_o to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n if_o we_o endeavour_v the_o best_a we_o can_v with_o a_o upright_a heart_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o than_o god_n in_o mercy_n will_v accept_v of_o our_o imperfect_a obedience_n for_o his_o sake_n this_o new_a covenant_n which_o christ_n have_v procure_v for_o we_o will_v admit_v of_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o and_o also_o of_o our_o true_a repentance_n for_o our_o sin_n which_o the_o legal_a covenant_n will_v not_o because_o it_o require_v perfect_a and_o personal_a obedience_n to_o every_o tittle_n of_o the_o law_n both_o in_o thought_n in_o word_n and_o in_o deed_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o new_a covenant_n 34._o covenant_n jer._n 31._o 33_o 34._o god_n be_v our_o god_n and_o he_o will_v forgive_v all_o our_o iniquity_n and_o will_v remember_v our_o sin_n no_o more_o upon_o condition_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n 24._o christ_n heb._n 12._o 24._o who_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o this_o covenant_n and_o that_o with_o our_o faith_n we_o join_v piety_n and_o new_a obedience_n christ_n have_v also_o give_v we_o his_o sacrament_n whereby_o this_o covenant_n be_v seal_v to_o we_o if_o we_o do_v worthy_o partake_v of_o they_o but_o of_o this_o covenant_n and_o also_o of_o the_o sacrament_n i_o have_v write_v more_o full_o in_o another_o treatise_n now_o meditate_v with_o a_o holy_a devotion_n upon_o all_o these_o advantage_n which_o every_o
true_a believer_n have_v by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n above_o all_o other_o man_n that_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o examine_v thyself_o hereby_o what_o thou_o have_v gain_v by_o he_o if_o thou_o have_v use_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n and_o his_o good_a creature_n sober_o and_o temperate_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o not_o to_o pamper_v or_o cherish_v any_o sin_n to_o dishonour_v he_o thereby_o and_o do_v return_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o they_o with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n because_o he_o be_v the_o sole_a giver_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o thou_o injoye_v then_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o and_o have_v make_v they_o blessing_n to_o thou_o which_o thou_o may_v free_o use_v to_o thy_o comfort_n otherwise_o thou_o can_v find_v little_a comfort_n in_o they_o also_o if_o thou_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o thy_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o christ_n and_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n hereof_o by_o the_o daily_o renew_v of_o thy_o repentance_n for_o thy_o daily_a sin_n then_o thou_o may_v be_v full_o persuade_v that_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o burden_n to_o thy_o conscience_n and_o do_v cleave_v close_o to_o thy_o soul_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o christ_n have_v nail_v it_o to_o his_o cross_n whereby_o thou_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o from_o the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n this_o consideration_n will_v much_o comfort_v thou_o when_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o affliction_n be_v take_v away_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o curse_n and_o thou_o be_v but_o chastise_v for_o thy_o good_a and_o not_o punish_v for_o thy_o hurt_n examine_v thyself_o yet_o further_o what_o thou_o have_v gain_v by_o christ_n for_o if_o thou_o can_v overpower_v thy_o corruption_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n and_o can_v leave_v thy_o sin_n before_o they_o leave_v thou_o and_o that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o be_v bitter_a to_o thy_o soul_n and_o do_v daily_o strive_v with_o a_o true_a purpose_n of_o heart_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n then_o thou_o have_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n in_o thou_o 25._o thou_o ezek._n 36._o 25._o and_o have_v pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o thy_o soul_n to_o purify_v &_o cleanse_v thou_o from_o all_o thy_o filthiness_n also_o if_o thou_o do_v find_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n that_o thou_o have_v a_o holy_a desire_n to_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o faithful_a endeavour_n to_o grow_v strong_a in_o grace_n that_o thy_o heart_n may_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o thy_o faith_n firm_a to_o uphold_v thou_o in_o thy_o suffering_n and_o trial_n then_o thou_o have_v get_v great_a gain_n and_o much_o advantage_n by_o christ_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v persuade_v of_o thy_o adoption_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o thou_o can_v not_o conceive_v how_o great_a thy_o gain_n will_v be_v for_o whatsoever_o a_o child_n can_v desire_v of_o a_o love_a father_n thou_o may_v expect_v much_o more_o from_o god_n nothing_o shall_v be_v too_o dear_a for_o thou_o nothing_o shall_v be_v hurtful_a to_o thou_o and_o nothing_o shall_v be_v conceal_v from_o thou_o that_o may_v be_v profitable_a and_o advantageous_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o thy_o soul_n let_v we_o consider_v now_o that_o our_o heart_n may_v ruminate_v well_o upon_o it_o for_o our_o great_a comfort_n what_o honour_n we_o have_v by_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 23._o god_n 1_o sam._n 18._o 23._o when_o saul_n servant_n come_v to_o persuade_v david_n to_o be_v the_o king_n son_n in_o law_n he_o give_v they_o this_o answer_n seem_v it_o to_o you_o a_o light_a thing_n to_o be_v a_o king_n son_n in_o law_n see_v that_o i_o be_o a_o poor_a man_n and_o light_o esteem_v how_o great_a then_o be_v the_o honour_n and_o how_o high_o to_o be_v esteem_v for_o a_o poor_a wretched_a captive_a to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o the_o eternal_a and_o everliving_a god_n to_o have_v such_o a_o father_n to_o come_v to_o in_o all_o our_o necessity_n such_o a_o refuge_n in_o all_o our_o distress_n such_o a_o protector_n against_o all_o our_o enemy_n and_o to_o be_v heir_n to_o such_o a_o inheritance_n as_o be_v incorruptible_a and_o eternal_a which_o christ_n have_v reserve_v for_o we_o in_o heaven_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o undefiled_a in_o our_o conversation_n as_o become_v the_o son_n of_o such_o a_o father_n we_o shall_v not_o walk_v stubborn_o before_o he_o but_o in_o filial_a fear_n and_o reverence_n obey_v his_o holy_a will_n and_o command_n with_o filial_a love_n and_o submit_v to_o his_o rod_n and_o correction_n as_o a_o child_n ought_v to_o submit_v to_o his_o father_n if_o our_o service_n be_v thus_o perform_v to_o god_n he_o will_v then_o be_v a_o tender_a and_o a_o gracious_a father_n to_o we_o if_o we_o have_v this_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n what_o be_v the_o gain_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o it_o what_o be_v all_o earthly_a honour_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o a_o true_a christian_n and_o yet_o most_o man_n covet_v and_o desire_v that_o gain_n and_o that_o honour_n and_o they_o neglect_v the_o true_a gain_n and_o the_o true_a honour_n of_o a_o christian_a which_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v desire_v 26_o desire_v mat._n 16._o 26_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v say_v christ_n if_o be_v shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n if_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n we_o have_v a_o rich_a patrimony_n we_o can_v want_v no_o comfort_n whatsoever_o shall_v betide_v we_o in_o soul_n or_o in_o body_n in_o good_n or_o good_a name_n he_o will_v repair_v all_o our_o loss_n in_o adam_n with_o his_o abundant_a righteousness_n he_o will_v also_o repair_v all_o our_o loss_n in_o child_n servant_n or_o estate_n either_o in_o this_o life_n 10_o life_n job_n 42_o 10_o as_o he_o do_v unto_o job_n or_o else_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v in_o a_o more_o plentiful_a manner_n christ_n will_v likewise_o furnish_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a ability_n to_o encounter_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o stand_v firm_o for_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o to_o endure_v the_o trial_n of_o our_o faith_n love_n hope_v and_o patience_n and_o he_o will_v make_v perfect_a whatsoever_o be_v want_v or_o imperfect_a in_o we_o 9_o we_o 2_o cor._n 12._o 9_o for_o his_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o his_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n his_o love_n and_o his_o care_n of_o we_o do_v most_o shine_v forth_o when_o we_o do_v most_o a_o base_a and_o humble_a ourselves_o and_o when_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v our_o unworthiness_n of_o it_o in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o shall_v meditate_v with_o all_o thankfulness_n upon_o the_o great_a benefit_n that_o we_o have_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o christ_n have_v seal_v for_o we_o with_o his_o blood_n for_o we_o may_v faithful_o believe_v and_o comfortable_o expect_v that_o god_n will_v perform_v his_o condition_n express_v therein_o to_o we_o though_o we_o can_v perfect_o perform_v our_o condition_n to_o he_o also_o that_o he_o will_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o filthiness_n 40._o filthiness_n jer._n 32._o 40._o and_o will_v put_v his_o fear_n in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o wherefore_o let_v not_o the_o fail_n and_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n discomfort_v we_o nor_o weaken_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n for_o the_o flesh_n will_v rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n will_v sometime_o break_v out_o upon_o we_o to_o dash_v and_o hinder_v our_o comfort_n in_o this_o gracious_a covenant_n therefore_o christ_n have_v ordain_v the_o two_o sacrament_n to_o seal_v this_o covenant_n to_o our_o soul_n for_o the_o better_a confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n 27._o faith_n gal._n 3._o 26_o 27._o for_o if_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n we_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o church_n and_o this_o covenant_n be_v seal_v to_o we_o 7_o we_o 1_o john_n 1._o 7_o and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n if_o age_n or_o sickness_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o sanctify_a grace_n do_v keep_v we_o from_o sin_v against_o god_n this_o be_v not_o the_o true_a purge_n away_o of_o sin_n nor_o the_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o sinful_a desire_n of_o the_o mind_n will_v remain_v strong_a and_o
with_o christ_n and_o have_v raise_v we_o up_o together_o and_o make_v we_o sit_v together_o in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o he_o may_v show_v the_o exceed_a riches_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o kindness_n towards_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n 23_o jesus_n eph._n 4._o 23_o this_o renovation_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n through_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n that_o by_o he_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o spiritual_a life_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o his_o name_n for_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n he_o be_v anoint_v of_o god_n and_o as_o he_o be_v jesus_n he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n to_o save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o work_v salvation_n for_o we_o whereof_o we_o be_v not_o capable_a until_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n wrought_v in_o we_o thus_o say_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n 3_o christ_n cant._n 1._o 3_o thy_o name_n be_v as_o ointment_n pour_v forth_o a_o precious_a ointment_n have_v many_o excellent_a virtue_n 15._o virtue_n psal_n 104._o 15._o for_o it_o make_v a_o cheerful_a countenance_n it_o comfort_v and_o strengthen_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n it_o heal_v all_o disease_n and_o it_o send_v forth_o a_o sweet_a savour_n when_o it_o be_v pour_v out_o which_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v all_o the_o sense_n thus_o be_v christ_n to_o every_o true_a believer_n soul_n he_o be_v the_o anoint_v of_o god_n as_o say_v the_o psalmist_n of_o he_o 7._o he_o psal_n 45._o 7._o thou_o love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_v wickedness_n therefore_o god_n thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n 38_o fellow_n act._n 10._o 38_o for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o power_n first_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o holy_a unction_n christ_n do_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o godliness_n and_o truth_n according_a to_o this_o of_o old_a simeon_n 32._o simeon_n lu._n 2._o 31_o 32._o that_o god_n have_v prepare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o light_n to_o lighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o to_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o people_n israel_n 11_o israel_n psal_n 97._o 11_o light_n be_v sow_o for_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o comfort_n and_o gladness_n of_o it_o for_o the_o upright_a in_o heart_n this_o prophecy_n be_v fulfil_v in_o christ_n 9_o christ_n isa_n 2._o 9_o the_o people_n that_o walk_v in_o darkness_n have_v see_v a_o great_a light_n they_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n upon_o they_o have_v the_o light_n shine_v 14_o shine_v eph._n 5._o 14_o wherefore_o awake_v thou_o that_o sleep_v in_o fin_n and_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o christ_n shall_v give_v thou_o light_n if_o we_o want_v this_o heavenly_a light_n we_o must_v needs_o wander_v and_o go_v astray_o from_o god_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o obtain_v such_o a_o light_n but_o by_o christ_n it_o be_v sin_n that_o have_v bring_v this_o darkness_n and_o this_o spiritual_a death_n upon_o our_o soul_n and_o none_o but_o christ_n can_v take_v it_o away_o this_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n when_o we_o have_v some_o light_n to_o discern_v the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o our_o soul_n second_o christ_n be_v the_o food_n and_o nourishment_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o preserve_v this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o who_o flesh_n we_o must_v spiritual_o eat_v and_o who_o blood_n we_o must_v spiritual_o drink_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o word_n preach_v and_o sacramental_o when_o we_o come_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n or_o else_o we_o have_v not_o this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o 53._o we_o john_n 6._o 48_o 53._o i_o be_o that_o bread_n of_o life_n say_v christ_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n who_o so_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n for_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o wherefore_o if_o our_o soul_n do_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o this_o heavenly_a food_n and_o do_v earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v refresh_v and_o full_o satisfy_v therewith_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o for_o christ_n do_v free_o offer_v himself_o to_o every_o empty_a soul_n that_o can_v feed_v upon_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o his_o word_n or_o in_o his_o sacrament_n but_o if_o our_o desire_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v take_v up_o with_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o earthly_a vanity_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o we_o have_v no_o hunger_n nor_o thirst_n after_o christ_n and_o that_o we_o feel_v so_o little_a want_n and_o need_v of_o he_o three_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a balm_n to_o heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o disease_n and_o wound_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v like_o 34_o like_o lu._n 10._o 34_o the_o good_a samaritan_n wine_n and_o oil_n for_o it_o have_v a_o cleanse_n and_o a_o heal_a virtue_n there_o can_v be_v no_o wound_n so_o deep_a in_o the_o soul_n and_o no_o ulcer_n so_o fester_v but_o this_o precious_a ointment_n will_v cleanse_v and_o heal_v it_o if_o it_o be_v right_o apply_v by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n for_o repentance_n lay_v open_v the_o wound_n by_o true_a confession_n and_o faith_n appli_v the_o remedy_n to_o it_o and_o then_o repentance_n give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v cure_v this_o be_v the_o way_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o recovery_n when_o our_o soul_n be_v sick_a of_o any_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o also_o to_o preserve_v that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v in_o we_o last_o when_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n that_o flow_v from_o christ_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o our_o soul_n they_o will_v great_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v our_o spirit_n in_o all_o sadness_n of_o heart_n and_o they_o will_v so_o presume_v all_o our_o action_n and_o service_n which_o we_o perform_v unto_o god_n that_o their_o sweet_a savour_n shall_v ascend_v up_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v smell_v it_o and_o gracious_o accept_v of_o we_o and_o of_o our_o offering_n 21._o offering_n gen._n 8._o 21._o when_o noah_n offer_v burn_v offering_n to_o the_o lord_n after_o the_o flood_n the_o lord_n smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n and_o accept_v his_o sacrifice_n and_o bless_v he_o exceed_o wherefore_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v perfume_v with_o grace_n they_o will_v so_o perfume_v all_o our_o holy_a oblation_n which_o we_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v in_o mercy_n accept_v they_o for_o his_o son_n sake_n 8._o sake_n i_o rev_v 5._o 8._o but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o stink_v in_o his_o nostril_n because_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o corrupt_a and_o unclean_a heart_n which_o be_v not_o perfume_v with_o grace_n how_o much_o 1_o ●_o eccl._n 10._o 1_o more_o when_o he_o bring_v they_o with_o a_o wicked_a mind_n 27_o ●o_o 21._o 27_o sin_n be_v like_o dead_a fly_n in_o the_o ointment_n of_o the_o apothecary_n which_o cause_v it_o to_o stink_v for_o sin_n make_v we_o odious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n wherefore_o take_v heed_n with_o what_o heart_n thou_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o thou_o bring_v no_o oblation_n to_o he_o with_o a_o wicked_a mind_n but_o first_o purify_v thy_o heart_n from_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v that_o thy_o soul_n be_v perfume_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o then_o come_v and_o offer_v thy_o gift_n and_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o sin_n in_o thy_o bosom_n unrepented_a of_o or_o any_o iniquity_n in_o thy_o heart_n which_o thou_o seek_v to_o hide_v from_o god_n than_o he_o can_v smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n of_o thy_o prayer_n of_o thy_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n or_o of_o any_o duty_n which_o thou_o perform_v to_o he_o to_o make_v it_o accept_v because_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o before_o god_n now_o we_o must_v examine_v ourselves_o what_o spiritual_a life_n we_o have_v by_o christ_n and_o we_o must_v know_v how_o he_o be_v our_o spiritual_a life_n if_o we_o will_v have_v any_o comfort_n thereby_o first_o 20_o first_o 1_o joh._n 2._o 20_o if_o we_o have_v this_o holy_a unction_n from_o christ_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o he_o above_o measure_n that_o
it_o may_v run_v down_o to_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v typify_v by_o 2._o by_o psal_n 133._o 2._o that_o precious_a ointment_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o aaron_n head_n and_o run_v down_o to_o the_o skirt_n of_o his_o garment_n so_o that_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a light_n to_o discern_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o our_o peace_n then_o christ_n have_v wrought_v this_o life_n in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n we_o be_v dead_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v heavenly_a 14_o heavenly_a 1_o cor._n 2._o 14_o and_o we_o can_v not_o receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v second_o if_o our_o soul_n can_v feed_v upon_o heavenly_a food_n and_o if_o we_o can_v express_v all_o other_o action_n of_o a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o holiness_n to_o speak_v the_o pure_a language_n of_o canaan_n and_o to_o have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n we_o may_v then_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o for_o so_o long_o as_o sin_n reign_v in_o our_o mortal_a body_n and_o until_o there_o be_v a_o new_a creation_n wrought_v in_o we_o we_o be_v spiritual_o dead_a to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o we_o can_v express_v no_o action_n of_o a_o sanctify_a life_n three_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o the_o filth_n and_o stain_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n by_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o cover_v under_o his_o righteousness_n that_o they_o appear_v not_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n or_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o that_o we_o delight_v not_o in_o any_o sin_n but_o do_v study_n and_o endeavour_v to_o serve_v and_o please_v god_n with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o christ_n have_v quicken_v and_o raise_v we_o up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n last_o if_o our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n proceed_v from_o a_o clean_a and_o a_o purify_a heart_n which_o be_v sanctify_v and_o perfume_v with_o the_o grace_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n than_o god_n will_v smell_v the_o perfume_n of_o they_o to_o accept_v of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o holy_a offering_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o thus_o we_o may_v know_v to_o our_o great_a comfort_n if_o we_o narrow_o look_v into_o our_o condition_n what_o spiritual_a life_n we_o have_v and_o that_o we_o have_v it_o only_o from_o christ_n and_o by_o he_o wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o live_v spiritual_o by_o christ_n thou_o must_v faithful_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v take_v away_o that_o spiritual_a death_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v upon_o thou_o for_o thy_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o only_o can_v give_v thou_o this_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o he_o have_v vanquish_v and_o overcome_v the_o power_n of_o death_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a so_o he_o can_v give_v a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o well_o as_o a_o temporal_a to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o please_v this_o spiritual_a life_n thou_o must_v have_v from_o he_o if_o thou_o can_v make_v a_o particular_a application_n of_o he_o to_o thyself_o by_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v thy_o saviour_n and_o thy_o redeemer_n for_o he_o have_v then_o breathe_v into_o thou_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v wrought_v this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o thou_o though_o at_o the_o first_o thou_o can_v feel_v no_o power_n of_o it_o without_o this_o application_n of_o christ_n to_o thyself_o thou_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n from_o he_o and_o he_o will_v profit_v thou_o nothing_o it_o do_v much_o comfort_n job_n in_o his_o great_a misery_n when_o he_o do_v thus_o apply_v christ_n to_o himself_o 27._o himself_o job_n 19_o 25_o 27._o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v who_o i_o shall_v see_v for_o myself_o if_o thou_o can_v bring_v thy_o heart_n to_o close_v thus_o with_o christ_n he_o will_v give_v light_n to_o thy_o eye_n food_n to_o thy_o soul_n balm_n for_o thy_o disease_n and_o comfortable_a refresh_n for_o thy_o languish_a spirit_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v still_o dead_a in_o thy_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n thou_o can_v then_o feel_v no_o comfort_n by_o he_o for_o what_o good_a can_v light_o do_v to_o a_o dead_a man_n what_o benefit_n can_v he_o have_v by_o the_o dainty_a food_n what_o can_v the_o best_a medicine_n profit_v he_o and_o what_o sense_n have_v he_o of_o the_o best_a perfume_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o christ_n and_o he_o in_o thou_o thou_o shall_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o fullness_n of_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n 19_o grace_n col._n 1._o 19_o for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v 16_o dwell_v john_n 1._o 16_o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n now_o consider_v further_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n 14_o life_n tit._n 2._o 14_o for_o he_o give_v himself_o free_o and_o voluntary_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o from_o whatsoever_o we_o be_v liable_a unto_o by_o reason_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o satan_n from_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n and_o from_o eternal_a condemnation_n also_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v subdue_v and_o overcome_v death_n hell_n and_o the_o grave_n that_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n to_o live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n christ_n have_v wrought_v our_o redemption_n by_o his_o active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n for_o he_o have_v take_v our_o life_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n where_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o enjoy_v it_o and_o have_v put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mercy_n where_o we_o be_v sure_a through_o christ_n to_o have_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o here_o and_o the_o happiness_n of_o it_o hereafter_o though_o we_o must_v pass_v by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n before_o we_o can_v enjoy_v the_o sweet_a consolation_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o though_o we_o must_v bring_v ourselves_o so_o low_o in_o our_o humiliation_n and_o in_o mortify_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o corruption_n as_o if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v thrust_v down_o into_o hell_n yet_o god_n will_v then_o give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n to_o support_v we_o he_o will_v then_o raise_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o our_o spiritual_a life_n may_v appear_v and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v fit_a to_o enjoy_v christ_n for_o ever_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o be_v the_o first_o main_a end_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v redeem_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n second_o christ_n be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o we_o have_v our_o justification_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n so_o we_o have_v our_o sanctification_n by_o the_o same_o blood_n and_o these_o two_o can_v be_v separate_v but_o must_v go_v together_o for_o we_o have_v no_o sure_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n the_o act_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v wrought_v at_o once_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n but_o our_o sanctification_n must_v be_v a_o continue_a act_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n have_v so_o many_o spot_n and_o stain_n of_o sin_n in_o they_o that_o they_o have_v daily_o need_v to_o pray_v to_o be_v every_o day_n purify_v and_o cleanse_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v daily_o renew_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n this_o be_v the_o second_o main_a end_n why_o christ_n give_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v purify_v we_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n to_o himself_o according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 14_o paul_n tit._n 2._o 14_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v unto_o himself_o
upon_o his_o throne_n of_o mercy_n ready_a to_o receive_v we_o if_o our_o faith_n do_v reach_v no_o further_a than_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n what_o he_o be_v in_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o what_o he_o be_v by_o incarnation_n or_o to_o his_o glorious_a excellency_n and_o dignity_n as_o he_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o to_o the_o work_n of_o man_n redemption_n as_o he_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v but_o the_o bare_a notion_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o effectual_a enough_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a happiness_n unregenerate_a man_n may_v know_v and_o believe_v thus_o much_o of_o christ_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o never_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o christ_n because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o heart_n to_o apply_v these_o thing_n to_o themselves_o the_o devil_n do_v know_v who_o christ_n be_v they_o know_v the_o purity_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o what_o power_n he_o have_v over_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o continue_v devil_n still_o wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o bare_a notion_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v unto_o salvation_n we_o must_v then_o 9_o then_o john_n 13._o 8_o 9_o as_o paul_n and_o silas_n say_v to_o the_o jailor_n believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o must_v rest_v upon_o he_o and_o put_v our_o whole_a confidence_n in_o he_o for_o our_o salvation_n also_o we_o must_v apply_v he_o and_o all_o his_o excellent_a dignity_n to_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o redemption_n by_o he_o and_o that_o we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n by_o our_o union_n with_o he_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v the_o perfection_n of_o true_a happiness_n if_o our_o faith_n can_v reach_v thus_o high_a and_o lay_v such_o hold_n upon_o christ_n by_o their_o particular_a application_n of_o he_o then_o let_v our_o condition_n be_v what_o it_o will_v we_o shall_v be_v happy_a while_o we_o live_v more_o happy_a when_o we_o die_v and_o most_o happy_a after_o death_n for_o no_o affliction_n or_o sorrow_n of_o life_n and_o no_o violence_n or_o extremity_n of_o sickness_n in_o death_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o take_v this_o happiness_n from_o we_o and_o after_o death_n we_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o our_o enemy_n for_o christ_n by_o who_o we_o have_v this_o happiness_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o loose_v it_o but_o by_o the_o grace_n and_o power_n of_o faith_n we_o shall_v still_o draw_v all_o spiritual_a comfort_n from_o christ_n to_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v we_o true_o happy_a in_o this_o life_n and_o everlasting_o happy_a in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o be_v the_o grace_n and_o power_n of_o true_a faith_n to_o apply_v particular_o to_o ourselves_o whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n and_o as_o he_o be_v our_o prophet_n our_o high_a priest_n our_o king_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n and_o then_o how_o mean_a soever_o our_o condition_n be_v he_o will_v make_v we_o happy_a in_o it_o and_o will_v crown_v we_o with_o everlasting_a happiness_n hereafter_o for_o where_o this_o faith_n be_v wrought_v there_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v abide_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v happy_a that_o intertain_v he_o 13._o he_o eph._n 1._o 13._o for_o after_o that_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n we_o be_v seal_v with_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o primise_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n this_o spirit_n of_o promise_n be_v the_o earnest_n of_o our_o inheritance_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o consider_v further_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o be_v near_o join_v unto_o christ_n 17._o christ_n eph._n 3._o 17._o for_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n this_o spiritual_a union_n with_o christ_n be_v more_o firm_a and_o close_o than_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n be_v with_o the_o head_n or_o the_o union_n of_o the_o branch_n be_v with_o the_o vine_n for_o nothing_o can_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n but_o he_o will_v keep_v we_o by_o his_o almighty_a power_n unto_o salvation_n if_o we_o be_v in_o this_o bless_a condition_n nothing_o can_v hurt_v the_o well-being_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o all_o thing_n shall_v work_v together_o for_o our_o good_a what_o comfort_n and_o what_o happiness_n can_v we_o want_v if_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n his_o grace_n will_v carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o discomfort_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n his_o blessing_n will_v be_v upon_o all_o that_o we_o enjoy_v and_o he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o fullness_n of_o happiness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v though_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n yet_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o many_o sorrow_n trouble_n and_o vexation_n in_o this_o life_n which_o will_v cloud_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o our_o felicity_n for_o we_o have_v here_o but_o the_o beginning_n of_o that_o bless_a and_o happy_a condition_n which_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v perfect_v and_o confirm_v to_o we_o for_o ever_o in_o christ_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v serious_o to_o meditate_v and_o study_v how_o to_o enjoy_v christ_n who_o be_v the_o true_a happiness_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o though_o we_o have_v but_o a_o taste_n of_o this_o heavenly_a consolation_n yet_o it_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o misery_n and_o as_o we_o daily_o grow_v in_o grace_n so_o we_o shall_v daily_o find_v more_o comfort_n by_o our_o assurance_n of_o the_o fruition_n of_o our_o future_a felicity_n in_o heaven_n also_o the_o more_o we_o grow_v in_o grace_n the_o more_o we_o shall_v grow_v out_o of_o love_n with_o this_o world_n because_o we_o shall_v the_o better_o see_v the_o vanity_n of_o it_o and_o the_o more_o we_o shall_v grow_v in_o love_n with_o virtue_n and_o true_a piety_n which_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o this_o happiness_n and_o to_o enjoy_v it_o to_o all_o eternity_n concern_v our_o justification_n the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o this_o high_a principle_n of_o religion_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o how_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o great_a concernment_n to_o every_o true_a christian_a and_o it_o do_v minister_v exceed_v much_o comfort_n to_o he_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o salvation_n now_o we_o be_v justify_v not_o for_o any_o inherent_a righteousness_n that_o be_v in_o we_o nor_o for_o any_o foresee_a work_n we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nor_o for_o any_o grace_n that_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o but_o as_o god_n do_v elect_v we_o of_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n and_o love_n so_o he_o do_v also_o free_o justify_v we_o first_o 19_o first_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o by_o not_o impute_v our_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n to_o we_o second_o by_o not_o inflict_v the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n upon_o we_o three_o by_o impute_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n four_o by_o pronounce_v and_o declare_v we_o to_o be_v just_a in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n and_o by_o witness_v the_o same_o to_o our_o conscience_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o last_o by_o his_o gracious_a acceptation_n of_o we_o this_o be_v our_o justification_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v be_v persuade_v of_o it_o for_o god_n have_v set_v up_o his_o seat_n of_o judgement_n in_o every_o man_n conscience_n so_o that_o when_o we_o remember_v our_o sin_n if_o our_o conscience_n do_v absolve_v we_o by_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o our_o justification_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o if_o it_o do_v condemn_v we_o than_o it_o will_v bind_v we_o over_o to_o answer_v for_o ourselves_o at_o the_o last_o and_o general_a judgement_n when_o it_o will_v bring_v bitter_a accusation_n against_o we_o and_o witness_v terrible_a thing_n against_o our_o poor_a soul_n for_o conscience_n be_v the_o high_a witness_n next_o under_o god_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v god_n free_a grace_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n who_o have_v take_v upon_o himself_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n whereby_o they_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o so_o that_o now_o god_n do_v account_v we_o just_a and_o righteous_a because_o we_o have_v no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v absolve_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o they_o and_o he_o will_v
iniquity_n of_o our_o sin_n unto_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o of_o his_o free_a grace_n to_o account_v we_o just_a by_o the_o imputation_n of_o his_o righteousness_n to_o we_o through_o faith_n so_o likewise_o hereby_o we_o have_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o all_o the_o privilege_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o son_n these_o be_v such_o benefit_n and_o such_o comfort_n as_o none_o can_v conceive_v but_o such_o as_o do_v enjoy_v they_o and_o none_o can_v enjoy_v they_o but_o by_o christ_n and_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o have_v they_o by_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o a_o true_a and_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o he_o second_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o all_o the_o gracious_a promise_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o do_v belong_v unto_o we_o also_o by_o faith_n we_o have_v great_a comfort_n and_o hope_n in_o all_o other_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n whether_o they_o concern_v this_o life_n or_o the_o life_n to_o come_v for_o we_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n and_o his_o ready_a will_n to_o perform_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o though_o his_o promise_n be_v sometime_o impossible_a to_o nature_n and_o above_o humane_a reason_n yet_o faith_n give_v we_o ability_n to_o rest_v upon_o they_o because_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v and_o able_a to_o perform_v his_o word_n thus_o say_v solomon_n bless_a 50._o ●_o 1_o king_n ●_o 50._o be_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v give_v rest_n unto_o his_o people_n israel_n according_a to_o all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v there_o have_v not_o fail_v one_o word_n of_o all_o his_o good_a promise_n which_o he_o promise_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n his_o servant_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v limit_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o though_o they_o be_v above_o our_o capacity_n yet_o we_o may_v confide_v in_o they_o for_o he_o will_v perform_v they_o in_o his_o due_a time_n 20._o time_n rom._n 4_o 18_o 19_o 20._o god_n make_v a_o promise_n to_o abraham_n that_o his_o seed_n shall_v be_v as_o numerous_a as_o the_o star_n in_o the_o firmament_n when_o he_o be_v about_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a and_o yet_o bet●g_v not_o weak_a in_o faith_n he_o stagger_v not_o at_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n through_o unbelief_n but_o against_o hope_n he_o believe_v in_o hope_n that_o he_o may_v become_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n and_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o what_o god_n have_v promise_v he_o be_v able_a also_o to_o perform_v 11_o perform_v heb._n 11._o 11_o sarah_n through_o faith_n receive_v strength_n to_o conceive_v seed_n though_o she_o be_v barren_a and_o past_a age_n and_o she_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o child_n because_o she_o judge_v he_o faithful_a who_o have_v promise_v if_o we_o do_v thus_o rest_v upon_o the_o promise_v god_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o in_o all_o the_o chance_n and_o change_n that_o can_v happen_v to_o we_o it_o will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o to_o receive_v they_o content_o at_o god_n hand_n but_o the_o special_a servant_n of_o god_n may_v be_v so_o over-pressed_n with_o the_o extremity_n of_o affliction_n that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o distrust_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o to_o waver_v in_o their_o assiance_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o if_o he_o delay_v to_o perform_v his_o promise_n and_o to_o help_v they_o this_o be_v asaph_n case_n who_o thus_o complain_v 10._o complain_v psal_n 74._o 8_o 10._o be_v his_o mercy_n clean_o go_v for_o ever_o do_v his_o promise_n fail_v for_o evermore_o but_o he_o do_v present_o check_v himself_o and_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v his_o infirmity_n thus_o to_o distrust_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n thus_o say_v peter_n 9_o peter_n 2_o pet._n 3._o 9_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n for_o he_o will_v remember_v to_o perform_v it_o when_o his_o time_n be_v come_v that_o it_o will_v make_v most_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o for_o our_o good_a wherefore_o 12._o wherefore_o heb._n 6._o 12._o we_o must_v wait_v patient_o upon_o god_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v inherit_v the_o promise_n 13._o promise_n eph._n 1._o 13._o for_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v seal_v with_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n that_o we_o may_v confident_o rest_v upon_o god_n and_o upon_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v find_v many_o promise_n of_o grace_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n when_o we_o be_v under_o any_o temptation_n to_o comfort_v our_o soul_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n or_o under_o the_o pressure_n of_o any_o cross_n or_o calamity_n and_o when_o we_o have_v find_v a_o promise_n that_o will_v suit_n with_o our_o present_a condition_n then_o to_o make_v use_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o it_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o and_o to_o rest_v firm_o upon_o it_o though_o it_o be_v above_o hope_n for_o god_n can_v and_o will_v assure_o perform_v it_o to_o our_o great_a consolation_n if_o god_n do_v defer_v the_o performance_n of_o it_o long_o than_o we_o expect_v yet_o we_o must_v patient_o wait_v upon_o he_o for_o when_o he_o have_v wrought_v his_o own_o work_n in_o we_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o our_o good_a he_o will_v not_o then_o delay_v to_o perform_v it_o a_o moment_n long_o three_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v receive_v much_o profit_n and_o comfort_n by_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n without_o which_o our_o service_n to_o god_n can_v be_v perform_v according_a to_o his_o will_n the_o preparation_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o the_o profitable_a ●earing_n of_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n be_v by_o faith_n 9_o faith_n act._n 15._o 9_o because_o hereby_o our_o heart_n be_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n may_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n to_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o free_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n upon_o our_o affection_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n that_o it_o can_v take_v root_n in_o we_o for_o our_o edification_n and_o instruction_n to_o convince_v we_o of_o our_o error_n to_o reprove_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sorrow_n and_o sadness_n of_o heart_n it_o be_v faith_n that_o make_v our_o heart_n good_a ground_n fit_a to_o receive_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n word_n that_o it_o may_v take_v deep_a root_n in_o we_o to_o fructify_v and_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n what_o comfort_n can_v we_o have_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o do_v not_o hear_v it_o with_o heart_n purify_v from_o our_o corruption_n by_o faith_n how_o can_v it_o profit_v we_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o holy_a preparation_n to_o receive_v it_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v imprint_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n to_o be_v a_o word_n of_o power_n in_o we_o unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v fruitful_a in_o we_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o life_n if_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o season_v with_o faith_n 17._o faith_n rom._n 10._o 17._o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n use_v to_o convey_v spiritual_a knowledge_n to_o the_o understanding_n holy_a desire_n to_o the_o will_n to_o study_v and_o endeavour_v to_o a_o godly_a life_n and_o also_o true_a consolation_n to_o the_o soul_n so_o likewise_o our_o heart_n be_v prepare_v by_o faith_n to_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o as_o we_o do_v refresh_v our_o body_n with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n so_o our_o soul_n be_v refresh_v and_o comfort_v by_o our_o spiritual_a feed_n on_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n also_o faith_n will_v put_v a_o holy_a zeal_n into_o our_o prayer_n to_o make_v they_o fervent_a and_o effectual_a to_o prevail_v with_o god_n to_o send_v we_o a_o gracious_a answer_n in_o his_o good_a time_n thus_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n 24._o christ_n mar._n 11._o 24._o what_o thing_n soever_o you_o desire_v when_o you_o pray_v believe_v that_o you_o receive_v they_o and_o you_o shall_v have_v they_o o_o what_o comfort_n may_v we_o find_v in_o our_o prayer_n when_o we_o be_v in_o want_n sorrow_n or_o in_o any_o necessity_n if_o we_o do_v pray_v with_o zealous_a affection_n and_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o our_o petition_n be_v grant_v before_o we_o receive_v they_o then_o we_o will_v wait_v upon_o god_n until_o he_o be_v
david_n delight_n to_o meditate_v on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n because_o he_o find_v great_a sweetness_n in_o it_o 163._o it_o psal_n 119._o 163._o how_o sweet_a say_v he_o be_v thy_o word_n unto_o my_o taste_n yea_o sweet_a than_o honey_n to_o my_o mouth_n if_o we_o have_v david_n spiritual_a palate_n 13._o palate_n isa_n 58._o 13._o we_o shall_v delight_v in_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n we_o shall_v delight_v to_o hear_v his_o word_n to_o come_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n to_o meditate_v on_o his_o law_n and_o to_o practice_v all_o holy_a duty_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n also_o if_o we_o do_v set_v ourselves_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o sufficient_a power_n against_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n hope_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v weak_a patience_n will_v make_v we_o bear_v our_o affliction_n and_o trial_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n holy_a zeal_n will_v make_v our_o prayer_n effectual_a to_o prevail_v with_o god_n to_o grant_v what_o we_o desire_v or_o what_o be_v better_o for_o we_o and_o constancy_n will_v make_v we_o continue_v in_o well-doing_n unto_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v that_o recompense_n of_o reward_n which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n have_v promise_v as_o faith_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n so_o it_o will_v always_o go_v along_o with_o every_o particular_a grace_n to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a to_o help_v we_o in_o time_n of_o need_n now_o we_o know_v the_o quickness_n of_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n by_o our_o delight_n in_o holy_a duty_n and_o in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o we_o may_v know_v the_o strength_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o every_o particular_a grace_n also_o the_o truth_n of_o every_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o will_v appear_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n if_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n go_v along_o with_o it_o how_o to_o increase_v faith_n every_o man_n have_v not_o alike_o measure_v of_o faith_n he_o that_o i●_n weak_a in_o faith_n may_v be_v make_v strong_a and_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n may_v yet_o have_v more_o for_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n which_o will_v grow_v and_o increase_v if_o it_o be_v spiritual_o water_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n christ_n do_v find_v a_o great_a faith_n in_o the_o woman_n of_o canaan_n and_o in_o some_o other_o 28._o other_o mat._n 15._o 28._o o_o woman_n say_v he_o to_o she_o great_a be_v thy_o faith_n but_o he_o do_v often_o reprove_v his_o disciple_n for_o the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v in_o particular_a unto_o peter_n 31_o peter_n mat._n 14._o 31_o o_o thou_o of_o little_a faith_n wherefoer_n do_v thou_o doubt_v peter_n doubt_v make_v he_o ready_a to_o sink_v as_o he_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n unto_o christ_n and_o it_o do_v discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o christ_n as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o give_v he_o power_n to_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n as_o he_o do_v this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n that_o when_o they_o see_v peril_n and_o danger_n ready_a to_o fall_v upon_o they_o and_o no_o mean_n either_o to_o escape_v they_o or_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o they_o then_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v rise_v in_o their_o mind_n to_o discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o make_v they_o distrust_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o doubt_v of_o his_o fatherly_a care_n of_o they_o and_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n to_o save_v they_o for_o sometime_o their_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o weak_a that_o it_o can_v mount_v above_o their_o humane_a capacity_n &_o they_o can_v see_v the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n to_o be_v far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o understanding_n when_o god_n see_v such_o weakness_n in_o our_o faith_n he_o will_v tender_o visit_v we_o and_o will_v give_v we_o hope_v by_o some_o manifest_a sign_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o our_o fear_n and_o doubt_n though_o our_o faith_n be_v weak_a yet_o if_o it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v save_v it_o be_v grow_v and_o it_o be_v last_v faith_n be_v save_v because_o it_o do_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n who_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o by_o who_o only_o we_o must_v be_v save_v 12._o save_v act._n 4._o 11_o 12._o christ_n be_v that_o stone_n which_o be_v set_v at_o nought_o of_o the_o bvilder_n which_o be_v bec●me_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n give_v among_o man_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v also_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o faith_n first_o 2._o first_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 2._o if_o we_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o milk_n of_o the_o breast_n that_o we_o may_v thereby_o grow_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_o preach_v without_o the_o mixture_n of_o erroneous_a doctrine_n it_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n sow_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o minister_n and_o he_o will_v water_v it_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o make_v it_o increase_v and_o fructify_v that_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o grace_n until_o we_o come_v to_o a_o full_a stature_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v hear_v i●_n with_o sanctify_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n second_o we_o may_v great_o increase_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n which_o be_v the_o true_a food_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o heavenly_a nourishment_n of_o that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o often_o we_o do_v thus_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n the_o more_o we_o cherish_v this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o the_o more_o we_o increase_v our_o faith_n and_o make_v all_o other_o save_v grace_n the_o strong_a in_o we_o three_o prayer_n be_v a_o special_a mean_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o we_o have_v the_o beginning_n of_o faith_n from_o god_n the_o increase_n of_o it_o also_o and_o the_o establishment_n of_o it_o be_v from_o god_n and_o we_o must_v beg_v it_o of_o he_o by_o our_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n or_o else_o we_o can_v obtain_v it_o thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n unto_o christ_n 5._o christ_n lu._n 17._o 5._o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n also_o thus_o say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o dumb_a child_n unto_o christ_n 24_o christ_n mar._n 9_o 24_o lord_n i_o believe_v help_v thou_o my_o unbelief_n god_n be_v ready_a to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n but_o special_o when_o they_o make_v such_o petition_n as_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o grant_v which_o be_v such_o as_o do_v make_v most_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o nothing_o can_v advance_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n more_o than_o when_o they_o crave_v the_o increase_n of_o their_o faith_n without_o which_o they_o can_v glorify_v god_n in_o no_o service_n which_o they_o perform_v unto_o he_o for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o honour_v he_o in_o any_o holy_a duty_n which_o he_o command_v four_o faith_n will_v grow_v and_o increase_v by_o our_o daily_a meditation_n on_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n how_o faithful_o he_o have_v perform_v all_o his_o promise_n how_o ready_a and_o how_o able_a he_o be_v still_o to_o perform_v they_o if_o we_o can_v rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n be_v immutable_a and_o omnipotent_a in_o his_o own_o essence_n that_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o that_o he_o will_v not_o alter_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v decree_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n and_o that_o he_o will_v perform_v all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o his_o word_n it_o will_v great_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o uphold_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n when_o any_o difficulty_n or_o danger_n press_v hard_a upon_o we_o which_o otherwise_o will_v shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n five_o the_o daily_a experience_n which_o we_o have_v of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n whether_o we_o be_v in_o prosperity_n or_o in_o adversity_n in_o health_n or_o in_o
sickness_n under_o the_o cross_n or_o under_o the_o buffet_n of_o satan_n this_o will_n much_o increase_v our_o faith_n and_o confirm_v our_o hope_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n 37._o god_n 1_o sam._n 17._o 37._o this_o consideration_n make_v david_n bold_a to_o encounter_v with_o goliath_n that_o great_a giant_n because_o god_n have_v former_o deliver_v he_o from_o the_o paw_n of_o the_o lion_n and_o from_o the_o paw_n of_o the_o bear_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v now_o deliver_v he_o from_o that_o uncircumcised_a philistine_n we_o shall_v make_v the_o same_o use_n of_o the_o former_a experience_n that_o we_o have_v any_o way_n have_v of_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o we_o to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o affiance_n in_o god_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n and_o can_v see_v no_o mean_n to_o give_v we_o any_o hope_n of_o safety_n or_o of_o deliverance_n six_o if_o we_o be_v of_o low_a esteem_n in_o our_o own_o eye_n and_o poor_a in_o spirit_n to_o walk_v humble_o before_o god_n in_o a_o true_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o unworthiness_n and_o of_o our_o emptiness_n of_o grace_n and_o goodness_n then_o god_n will_v give_v we_o more_o grace_n more_o holy_a zeal_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o rich_a in_o faith_n 5._o faith_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 5._o for_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a thus_o we_o may_v have_v more_o strength_n of_o faith_n from_o god_n because_o he_o will_v deal_v like_o a_o tender_a father_n with_o these_o that_o know_v their_o own_o weakness_n to_o supply_v their_o want_n with_o a_o gracious_a increase_n of_o their_o faith_n 3._o faith_n isa_n 42._o 3._o for_o he_o will_v not_o break_v the_o bruise_a reed_n nor_o quench_v the_o smoke_a flax_n neither_o will_v he_o require_v of_o the_o weak_a so_o much_o as_o of_o these_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n and_o whatsoever_o he_o require_v of_o they_o he_o will_v give_v such_o ability_n of_o grace_n as_o shall_v make_v they_o able_a to_o perform_v it_o last_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v our_o faith_n increase_v we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o give_v no_o liberty_n to_o sin_n for_o that_o will_v weaken_v our_o faith_n it_o will_v stop_v the_o influence_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n and_o hinder_v the_o free_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o we_o how_o can_v we_o confide_v and_o trust_v in_o god_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n when_o we_o have_v deserve_v his_o wrath_n and_o displeasure_n for_o some_o sin_n that_o do_v over_o power_n we_o without_o repentance_n how_o can_v grace_n be_v strong_a in_o we_o if_o sin_n do_v still_o reign_v in_o our_o mortal_a body_n there_o can_v be_v no_o increase_n of_o faith_n if_o sin_n be_v strong_a in_o we_o if_o god_n be_v please_v to_o try_v our_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o as_o he_o do_v abraha●s_n faith_n joseph_n chastity_n and_o job_n patience_n we_o shall_v be_v find_v very_o weak_a if_o our_o conscience_n can_v accuse_v we_o of_o any_o sin_n that_o be_v not_o mortify_v and_o subdue_v in_o we_o wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o be_v conscious_a of_o the_o weakness_n of_o thy_o faith_n by_o thy_o inability_n to_o resist_v any_o temptation_n or_o provocation_n unto_o sin_n by_o thy_o waver_a and_o doubt_v in_o the_o true_a performance_n of_o god_n promise_n if_o they_o be_v above_o thy_o capacity_n and_o by_o thy_o perplex_a fear_n when_o trouble_n or_o danger_n be_v ready_a to_o seize_v upon_o thou_o thou_o must_v not_o look_v upon_o thy_o own_o deserve_n except_o i●_n be_v for_o thy_o humiliation_n for_o thou_o must_v know_v that_o god_n do_v not_o make_v his_o gracious_a promise_n for_o thy_o sake_n though_o they_o be_v make_v for_o thy_o good_a but_o god_n make_v they_o to_o thou_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o all_o merit_n 20_o merit_n 2_o cor_n 1._o 20_o and_o in_o who_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_n so_o that_o if_o thou_o be_v in_o christ_n thou_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o question_v the_o performance_n of_o any_o of_o god_n promise_n also_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o thy_o faith_n meditate_v pious_o upon_o those_o former_a direction_n and_o then_o have_v recourse_n by_o prayer_n to_o thy_o bless_a saviour_n and_o he_o will_v uphold_v thy_o faith_n against_o all_o adversary_n power_n that_o shall_v oppose_v it_o but_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n no_o promise_n of_o grace_n belong_v unto_o thou_o and_o thou_o can_v find_v no_o comfort_n therein_o how_o to_o esteem_v of_o faith_n though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a high_o to_o prize_n and_o esteem_v of_o true_a justify_v faith_n if_o we_o do_v due_o weigh_v and_o consider_v those_o excellent_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o faith_n former_o set_v down_o to_o make_v we_o happy_a here_o in_o this_o life_n and_o eternal_o bless_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v yet_o the_o great_a worth_n and_o esteem_n of_o it_o will_v further_o appear_v by_o these_o follow_a consideration_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n first_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v set_v several_a high_a commendation_n on_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n of_o great_a price_n 20_o price_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 20_o for_o by_z peter_z he_o call_v it_o precious_a faith_n because_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o righteousness_n of_o our_o god_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o because_o we_o do_v enjoy_v christ_n himself_o by_o it_o we_o must_v needs_o therefore_o esteem_v it_o as_o a_o most_o precious_a jewel_n because_o god_n will_v bestow_v it_o upon_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v his_o dear_a child_n and_o elect_v unto_o salvation_n holy_a david_n be_v a_o great_a king_n renown_v for_o his_o honour_n riches_n and_o valour_n he_o be_v victorious_a in_o all_o his_o battle_n and_o he_o prosper_v in_o all_o his_o enterprise_n yet_o his_o faith_n and_o hope_n be_v in_o none_o of_o these_o 1._o these_o psal_n 7._o 1._o but_o his_o trust_n be_v in_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v slight_v all_o his_o earthly_a greatness_n and_o do_v count_v himself_o happy_a only_o by_o his_o faith_n in_o god_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v 4_o say_v psal_n 40._o 4_o blessed_a be_v that_o man_n that_o make_v the_o lord_n his_o trust_n but_o some_o have_v no_o regard_n to_o fix_v their_o faith_n on_o god_n for_o they_o put_v their_o confidence_n in_o the_o arm_n of_o flesh_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o their_o host_n and_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o their_o chariot_n and_o horseman_n these_o have_v no_o ground_n for_o their_o faith_n to_o rest_v upon_o but_o what_o this_o world_n can_v afford_v they_o which_o they_o will_v find_v to_o be_v vain_a and_o like_o a_o break_a reed_n no_o way_n able_a to_o save_v they_o hadadezer_n trust_v in_o his_o chariot_n and_o horseman_n 4_o horseman_n 2_o sam._n 8._o 4_o but_o david_n smite_v he_o with_o a_o very_a great_a slaughter_n and_o take_v from_o he_o a_o thousand_o chariot_n because_o he_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n 9_o lord_n 2_o chro._n 14._o 9_o zerah_n the_o ethiopian_a put_v his_o trust_n in_o his_o numerous_a army_n which_o be_v a_o thousand_o thousand_o but_o the_o lord_n overthrow_v they_o before_o king_n asa_n the_o faith_n that_o worldly_a man_n have_v in_o their_o riches_n and_o in_o their_o greatness_n be_v not_o this_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o precious_a and_o so_o much_o to_o be_v esteem_v for_o their_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o worldly_a strength_n and_o it_o reach_v no_o further_a than_o humane_a reason_n can_v carry_v it_o no_o marvel_n then_o if_o it_o do_v deceive_v they_o in_o the_o end_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a be_v fix_v upon_o christ_n and_o upon_o no_o other_o object_n who_o be_v a_o sure_a rock_n to_o rest_v upon_o and_o it_o reach_v up_o to_o heaven_n even_o to_o god_n himself_o and_o it_o will_v fetch_v down_o help_v and_o succour_n comfort_n and_o consolation_n from_o he_o upon_o all_o occasion_n when_o we_o need_v it_o judas_n call_v it_o 2d_o it_o judas_n 2d_o most_o holy_a faith_n because_o it_o make_v we_o holy_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o put_v upon_o we_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o because_o by_o it_o as_o it_o have_v relation_n unto_o christ_n our_o prayer_n and_o all_o other_o our_o service_n to_o god_n be_v holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o he_o wherefore_o see_v faith_n be_v so_o precious_a that_o god_n will_v bestow_v it_o upon_o none_o but_o upon_o his_o own_o child_n and_o so_o holy_a that_o it_o make_v all_o our_o service_n to_o god_n to_o be_v holy_a we_o ought_v to_o esteem_v it_o as_o a_o pearl_n of_o great_a price_n and_o to_o keep_v it_o as_o a_o most_o precious_a jewel_n second_o we_o
can_v they_o hate_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v wicked_a and_o sinful_a because_o it_o be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o their_o nature_n and_o they_o have_v no_o grace_n to_o check_v their_o corrupt_a nature_n for_o love_v that_o which_o god_n hate_v and_o have_v forbid_v whereas_o a_o regenerate_a man_n will_v find_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o he_o will_v give_v he_o a_o secret_a check_n if_o his_o unregenerate_a part_n do_v take_v pleasure_n and_o delight_n in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v sinful_a for_o he_o must_v not_o conform_v himself_o to_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sense_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v lose_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o enjoy_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n and_o his_o assist_a grace_n which_o be_v our_o great_a comfort_n in_o all_o misery_n and_o distress_n and_o so_o long_o as_o we_o do_v enjoy_v that_o we_o be_v sensible_a of_o our_o faith_n and_o we_o feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o but_o when_o god_n do_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o we_o and_o withdraw_v his_o assist_a grace_n it_o be_v the_o great_a trouble_n that_o can_v betide_v we_o it_o take_v away_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n from_o our_o soul_n and_o leave_v we_o in_o a_o sad_a and_o sorrowful_a condition_n in_o our_o apprehension_n because_o the_o support_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v cloud_v from_o we_o god_n do_v sometime_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o dear_a servant_n and_o do_v suffer_v they_o to_o loose_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o a_o time_n to_o make_v they_o prize_v it_o the_o more_o and_o to_o be_v the_o more_o careful_a of_o it_o this_o god_n will_v also_o do_v by_o lay_v his_o rod_n of_o correction_n heavy_a upon_o we_o if_o he_o see_v that_o we_o watch_v not_o careful_o over_o our_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v careless_a in_o the_o use_n and_o exercise_v of_o it_o that_o we_o sleep_v in_o security_n or_o lie_v dead_a in_o our_o sin_n without_o repentance_n or_o if_o we_o abuse_v his_o love_n and_o goodness_n to_o we_o for_o than_o he_o will_v leave_v we_o to_o ourselves_o to_o let_v we_o see_v our_o own_o weakness_n without_o his_o assist_a grace_n upon_o these_o and_o the_o like_a occasion_n the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o take_v his_o advantage_n to_o assault_v we_o with_o his_o temptation_n to_o make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n when_o affliction_n press_v sore_o upon_o we_o also_o to_o aggravate_v our_o sin_n or_o else_o to_o hide_v they_o out_o of_o our_o sight_n as_o he_o do_v david_n sin_n of_o adultery_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n he_o can_v to_o keep_v we_o in_o unbelief_n or_o without_o repentance_n that_o we_o may_v not_o recover_v the_o sense_n and_o comfort_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o his_o main_a drift_n be_v at_o last_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n it_o be_v a_o cunning_a policy_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o full_a of_o danger_n if_o he_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o confess_v they_o and_o lay_v they_o open_v before_o god_n with_o a_o true_o humble_v &_o penitent_a heart_n that_o so_o by_o ou●_n repentance_n we_o may_v have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o for_o then_o will_v our_o faith_n break_v forth_o as_o th●_n sun_n out_o of_o a_o cloud_n to_o warm_v and_o refresh_v our_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a consolation_n for_o we_o can_v lose_v the_o habit_n of_o faith_n though_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o may_v be_v take_v from_o we_o for_o a_o time_n sometime_o god_n himself_o will_v sift_v and_o winnow_v we_o as_o wheat_n to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o our_o chaff_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n and_o to_o humble_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n thus_o he_o sift_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 9_o prophet_n am●s_fw-la 9_o 9_o for_o lo_o i_o will_v command_v and_o i_o will_v sift_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n among_o the_o nation_n like_v as_o corn_n be_v sift_v in_o a_o five_o yet_o shall_v not_o the_o least_o grain_n fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n though_o god_n do_v sometime_o deal_v thus_o rigorous_o with_o we_o and_o do_v leave_v we_o no_o hope_n to_o support_v our_o faith_n yet_o not_o the_o least_o grain_n of_o his_o corn_n shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n but_o our_o faith_n shall_v recover_v her_o strength_n again_o it_o be_v only_a sin_n that_o make_v a_o separation_n between_o god_n and_o we_o according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 2._o prophet_n isai_n 59_o 2._o but_o your_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n and_o your_o sin_n have_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v 5._o hear_v cant._n 5._o it_o be_v sin_n that_o cause_v christ_n withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o spouse_n because_o she_o will_v not_o open_v to_o he_o when_o he_o knock_v but_o when_o he_o be_v go_v and_o pass_v she_o be_v in_o a_o woeful_a and_o comfortless_a condition_n nothing_o can_v so_o much_o afflict_v we_o as_o the_o loss_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n love_n and_o nothing_o can_v shake_v our_o faith_n so_o much_o as_o when_o our_o soul_n be_v perplex_v because_o in_o our_o own_o apprehension_n god_n be_v either_o become_v our_o enemy_n or_o else_o he_o have_v quite_o forsake_v we_o how_o do_v job_n complain_v in_o his_o great_a affliction_n 28._o affliction_n job_n 30._o 27_o 28._o my_o bowel_n boil_v and_o rest_v not_o i_o go_v mourn_v without_o the_o sun_n my_o skin_n be_v black_a upon_o i_o and_o my_o bone_n be_v burn_v with_o heat_n my_o harp_n also_o be_v turn_v to_o mourning_n and_o my_o organ_n into_o the_o voice_n of_o they_o that_o weep_v holy_a david_n faith_n be_v bring_v to_o so_o low_a a_o degree_n by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o burden_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n for_o it_o that_o he_o cry_v to_o the_o lord_n say_v 23._o say_v psal_n 38._o 4_o 6_o 21_o 23._o forsake_v i_o not_o o_o lord_n o_o my_o god_n be_v not_o far_o from_o i_o make_v haste_n to_o help_v i_o o_o lord_n my_o salvation_n and_o again_o he_o thus_o cry_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o soul_n 143._o soul_n psal_n 143._o hear_v i_o speedy_o o_o lord_n my_o spirit_n fail_v hide_v not_o thy_o face_n from_o i_o lest_o i_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o that_o go_v down_o into_o the_o pit_n 2._o pit_n psal_n 13._o ●_o 2._o how_o long_o will_v thou_o forget_v i_o o_o lord_n for_o ever_o how_o long_o will_v thou_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o how_o long_o shall_v i_o take_v counsel_n in_o my_o soul_n have_v sorrow_n in_o my_o heart_n daily_o how_o long_o shall_v my_o enemy_n be_v exalt_v over_o i_o sure_o david_n have_v at_o this_o time_n little_a or_o no●_n sense_n of_o faith_n to_o trust_v and_o depend_v upon_o god_n these_o and_o the_o like_a be_v the_o doleful_a complaint_n of_o god_n child_n when_o they_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o sorrow_n or_o feel_v any_o spiritual_a desertion_n in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v receive_v comfort_n until_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v the_o true_a comforter_n do_v give_v they_o some_o assurance_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o our_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o strong_o assault_v with_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n of_o heart_n that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o hold_v out_o but_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v under_o the_o pressure_n of_o our_o misery_n because_o it_o will_v take_v away_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o must_v uphold_v we_o but_o special_o when_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n lie_v upon_o the_o conscience_n for_o that_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o such_o a_o apprehension_n of_o a_o spiritual_a desertion_n that_o we_o can_v feel_v no_o comfort_n in_o god_n for_o the_o time_n for_o it_o will_v stop_v the_o current_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n to_o our_o afflict_a spirit_n which_o we_o can_v have_v but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o nothing_o will_v take_v impression_n in_o we_o to_o comfort_v we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n but_o these_o or_o the_o like_a uncomfortable_a complaint_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o be_v utter_v that_o god_n have_v quite_o forsake_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o salvation_n for_o we_o because_o our_o sin_n be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o grievous_a if_o we_o be_v thus_o afflict_v and_o perplex_v in_o mind_n that_o fear_n and_o doubt_n of_o salvation_n trouble_v we_o because_o our_o faith_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o can_v discern_v it_o this_o will_v give_v we_o great_a satisfaction_n and_o